<SPAN name="startofbook"></SPAN>
<p><br/><br/></p>
<h1> THE OUTLET </h1>
<p><br/></p>
<h2> By Andy Adams </h2>
<p><br/></p>
<hr />
<p><SPAN name="link2H_PREF" id="link2H_PREF"></SPAN></p>
<h2> PREFACE </h2>
<p>At the close of the civil war the need for a market for the surplus cattle
of Texas was as urgent as it was general. There had been numerous
experiments in seeking an outlet, and there is authority for the statement
that in 1857 Texas cattle were driven to Illinois. Eleven years later
forty thousand head were sent to the mouth of Red River in Louisiana,
shipped by boat to Cairo, Illinois, and thence inland by rail. Fever
resulted, and the experiment was never repeated. To the west of Texas
stretched a forbidding desert, while on the other hand, nearly every drive
to Louisiana resulted in financial disaster to the drover. The republic of
Mexico, on the south, afforded no relief, as it was likewise overrun with
a surplus of its own breeding. Immediately before and just after the war,
a slight trade had sprung up in cattle between eastern points on Red River
and Baxter Springs, in the southeast corner of Kansas. The route was
perfectly feasible, being short and entirely within the reservations of
the Choctaws and Cherokees, civilized Indians. This was the only route to
the north; for farther to the westward was the home of the buffalo and the
unconquered, nomadic tribes. A writer on that day, Mr. Emerson Hough, an
acceptable authority, says: "The civil war stopped almost all plans to
market the range cattle, and the close of that war found the vast grazing
lands of Texas fairly covered with millions of cattle which had no actual
or determinate value. They were sorted and branded and herded after a
fashion, but neither they nor their increase could be converted into
anything but more cattle. The demand for a market became imperative."</p>
<p>This was the situation at the close of the '50's and meanwhile there had
been no cessation in trying to find an outlet for the constantly
increasing herds. Civilization was sweeping westward by leaps and bounds,
and during the latter part of the '60's and early '70's, a market for a
very small percentage of the surplus was established at Abilene,
Ellsworth, and Wichita, being confined almost exclusively to the state of
Kansas. But this outlet, slight as it was, developed the fact that the
transplanted Texas steer, after a winter in the north, took on flesh like
a native, and by being double-wintered became a marketable beef. It should
be understood in this connection that Texas, owing to climatic conditions,
did not mature an animal into marketable form, ready for the butcher's
block. Yet it was an exceptional country for breeding, the percentage of
increase in good years reaching the phenomenal figures of ninety-five
calves to the hundred cows. At this time all eyes were turned to the new
Northwest, which was then looked upon as the country that would at last
afford the proper market. Railroads were pushing into the domain of the
buffalo and Indian; the rush of emigration was westward, and the Texan was
clamoring for an outlet for his cattle. It was written in the stars that
the Indian and buffalo would have to stand aside.</p>
<p>Philanthropists may deplore the destruction of the American bison, yet it
was inevitable. Possibly it is not commonly known that the general
government had under consideration the sending of its own troops to
destroy the buffalo. Yet it is a fact, for the army in the West fully
realized the futility of subjugating the Indians while they could draw
subsistence from the bison. The well-mounted aborigines hung on the flanks
of the great buffalo herds, migrating with them, spurning all treaty
obligations, and when opportunity offered murdering the advance guard of
civilization with the fiendish atrocity of carnivorous animals. But while
the government hesitated, the hide-hunters and the railroads solved the
problem, and the Indian's base of supplies was destroyed.</p>
<p>Then began the great exodus of Texas cattle. The red men were easily
confined on reservations, and the vacated country in the Northwest became
cattle ranges. The government was in the market for large quantities of
beef with which to feed its army and Indian wards. The maximum year's
drive was reached in 1884, when nearly eight hundred thousand cattle, in
something over three hundred herds, bound for the new Northwest, crossed
Red River, the northern boundary of Texas. Some slight idea of this exodus
can be gained when one considers that in the above year about four
thousand men and over thirty thousand horses were required on the trail,
while the value of the drive ran into millions. The history of the world
can show no pastoral movement in comparison. The Northwest had furnished
the market—the outlet for Texas.</p>
<p><br/></p>
<hr />
<p><br/></p>
<blockquote>
<p><big><b>CONTENTS</b></big></p>
<p><br/> <SPAN href="#link2H_PREF"> PREFACE </SPAN><br/><br/> <SPAN href="#link2H_4_0002"> <big><b>THE OUTLET</b></big> </SPAN><br/><br/><br/>
<SPAN href="#link2HCH0001"> CHAPTER I. </SPAN> OPENING THE CAMPAIGN
<br/><br/> <SPAN href="#link2HCH0002"> CHAPTER II. </SPAN> ORGANIZING
THE FORCES <br/><br/> <SPAN href="#link2HCH0003"> CHAPTER III. </SPAN> RECEIVING
AT LOS LOBOS <br/><br/> <SPAN href="#link2HCH0004"> CHAPTER IV. </SPAN> MINGLING
WITH THE EXODUS <br/><br/> <SPAN href="#link2HCH0005"> CHAPTER V. </SPAN> RED
RIVER STATION <br/><br/> <SPAN href="#link2HCH0006"> CHAPTER VI. </SPAN> CAMP
SUPPLY <br/><br/> <SPAN href="#link2HCH0007"> CHAPTER VII. </SPAN> WHEN
GREEK MEETS GREEK <br/><br/> <SPAN href="#link2HCH0008"> CHAPTER VIII. </SPAN> EN
PASSANT <br/><br/> <SPAN href="#link2HCH0009"> CHAPTER IX. </SPAN> AT
SHERIFF'S CREEK <br/><br/> <SPAN href="#link2HCH0010"> CHAPTER X. </SPAN> A
FAMILY REUNION <br/><br/> <SPAN href="#link2HCH0011"> CHAPTER XI. </SPAN> ALL
IN THE DAY'S WORK <br/><br/> <SPAN href="#link2HCH0012"> CHAPTER XII. </SPAN> MARSHALING
THE FORCES <br/><br/> <SPAN href="#link2HCH0013"> CHAPTER XIII. </SPAN> JUSTICE
IN THE SADDLE <br/><br/> <SPAN href="#link2HCH0014"> CHAPTER XIV. </SPAN> TURNING
THE TABLES <br/><br/> <SPAN href="#link2HCH0015"> CHAPTER XV. </SPAN> TOLLESTON
BUTTS IN <br/><br/> <SPAN href="#link2HCH0016"> CHAPTER XVI. </SPAN> CROSSING
THE NIOBRARA <br/><br/> <SPAN href="#link2HCH0017"> CHAPTER XVII. </SPAN> WATER-BOUND
<br/><br/> <SPAN href="#link2HCH0018"> CHAPTER XVIII. </SPAN> THE
LITTLE MISSOURI <br/><br/> <SPAN href="#link2HCH0019"> CHAPTER XIX. </SPAN> IN
QUARANTINE <br/><br/> <SPAN href="#link2HCH0020"> CHAPTER XX. </SPAN> ON
THE JUST AND THE UNJUST <br/><br/> <SPAN href="#link2HCH0021"> CHAPTER XXI.</SPAN> FORT BUFORD <br/><br/> <SPAN href="#link2HCH0022"> CHAPTER
XXII. </SPAN> A SOLDIER'S HONOR <br/><br/> <SPAN href="#link2HCH0023"> CHAPTER XXIII. </SPAN> KANGAROOED
<br/><br/> <SPAN href="#link2HCH0024"> CHAPTER XXIV. </SPAN> THE
WINTER OF OUR DISCONTENT <br/><br/></p>
</blockquote>
<p><br/></p>
<hr />
<p><SPAN name="link2H_4_0002" id="link2H_4_0002"></SPAN></p>
<h1> THE OUTLET </h1>
<p><SPAN name="link2HCH0001" id="link2HCH0001"></SPAN></p>
<br/>
<h2> CHAPTER I. OPENING THE CAMPAIGN </h2>
<p>"Well, gentlemen, if that is the best rate you can offer us, then we'll
drive the cattle. My boys have all been over the trail before, and your
figures are no inducement to ship as far as Red River. We are fully aware
of the nature of the country, but we can deliver the herds at their
destination for less than you ask us for shipping them one third of the
distance. No; we'll drive all the way."</p>
<p>The speaker was Don Lovell, a trail drover, and the parties addressed were
the general freight agents of three railroad lines operating in Texas. A
conference had been agreed upon, and we had come in by train from the
ranch in Medina County to attend the meeting in San Antonio. The railroad
representatives were shrewd, affable gentlemen, and presented an array of
facts hard to overcome. They were well aware of the obstacles to be
encountered in the arid, western portion of the state, and magnified every
possibility into a stern reality. Unrolling a large state map upon the
table, around which the principals were sitting, the agent of the Denver
and Fort Worth traced the trail from Buffalo Gap to Doan's Crossing on Red
River. Producing what was declared to be a report of the immigration agent
of his line, he showed by statistics that whole counties through which the
old trail ran had recently been settled up by Scandinavian immigrants. The
representative of the Missouri, Kansas, and Texas, when opportunity
offered, enumerated every disaster which had happened to any herd to the
westward of his line in the past five years. The factor of the
International was equally well posted.</p>
<p>"Now, Mr. Lovell," said he, dumping a bundle of papers on the table, "if
you will kindly glance over these documents, I think I can convince you
that it is only a question of a few years until all trail cattle will ship
the greater portion of the way. Here is a tabulated statement up to and
including the year '83. From twenty counties tributary to our line and
south of this city, you will notice that in '80 we practically handled no
cattle intended for the trail. Passing on to the next season's drive, you
see we secured a little over ten per cent. of the cattle and nearly thirty
per cent. of the horse stock. Last year, or for '83, drovers took
advantage of our low rates for Red River points, and the percentage ran up
to twenty-four and a fraction, or practically speaking, one fourth of the
total drive. We are able to offer the same low rates this year, and all
arrangements are completed with our connecting lines to give live-stock
trains carrying trail cattle a passenger schedule. Now, if you care to
look over this correspondence, you will notice that we have inquiries
which will tax our carrying capacity to its utmost. The 'Laurel Leaf' and
'Running W' people alone have asked for a rate on thirty thousand head."</p>
<p>But the drover brushed the correspondence aside, and asked for the
possible feed bills. A blanket rate had been given on the entire shipment
from that city, or any point south, to Wichita Falls, with one rest and
feed. Making a memorandum of the items, Lovell arose from the table and
came over to where Jim Flood and I were searching for Fort Buford on a
large wall map. We were both laboring under the impression that it was in
Montana, but after our employer pointed it out to us at the mouth of the
Yellowstone in Dakota, all three of us adjourned to an ante-room. Flood
was the best posted trail foreman in Don Lovell's employ, and taking seats
at the table, we soon reduced the proposed shipping expense to a pro-rata
sum per head. The result was not to be considered, and on returning to the
main office, our employer, as already expressed, declined the proffered
rate.</p>
<p>Then the freight men doubled on him, asking if he had taken into
consideration a saving in wages. In a two days' run they would lay down
the cattle farther on their way than we could possibly drive in six weeks,
even if the country was open, not to say anything about the wear and tear
of horseflesh. But Don Lovell had not been a trail drover for nearly
fifteen years without understanding his business as well as the freight
agents did theirs. After going over a large lot of other important data,
our employer arose to take his leave, when the agent of the local line
expressed a hope that Mr. Lovell would reconsider his decision before
spring opened, and send his drive a portion of the way by rail.</p>
<p>"Well, I'm glad I met you, gentlemen," said the cowman at parting, "but
this is purely a business proposition, and you and I look at it from
different viewpoints. At the rate you offer, it will cost me one dollar
and seventy-five cents to lay a steer down on Red River. Hold on; mine are
all large beeves; and I must mount my men just the same as if they trailed
all the way. Saddle horses were worth nothing in the North last year, and
I kept mine and bought enough others around Dodge to make up a thousand
head, and sent them back over the trail to my ranch. Now, it will take six
carloads of horses for each herd, and I propose to charge the freight on
them against the cattle. I may have to winter my remudas in the North, or
drive them home again, and if I put two dollars a head freight in them,
they won't bring a cent more on that account. With the cattle it's
different; they are all under contract, but the horses must be charged as
general expense, and if nothing is realized out of them, the herd must pay
the fiddler. My largest delivery is a sub-contract for Fort Buford,
calling for five million pounds of beef on foot. It will take three herds
or ten thousand cattle to fill it. I was anxious to give those Buford
beeves an early start, and that was the main reason in my consenting to
this conference. I have three other earlier deliveries at Indian agencies,
but they are not as far north by several hundred miles, and it's
immaterial whether we ship or not. But the Buford contract sets the day of
delivery for September 15, and it's going to take close figuring to make a
cent. The main contractors are all right, but I'm the one that's got to
scratch his head and figure close and see that there's no leakages. Your
freight bill alone would be a nice profit. It may cost us a little for
water getting out of Texas, but with the present outlet for cattle, it's
bad policy to harass the herds. Water is about the best crop some of those
settlers along the trail have to sell, and they ought to treat us right."</p>
<p>After the conference was over, we scattered about the city, on various
errands, expecting to take the night train home. It was then the middle of
February, and five of the six herds were already purchased. In spite of
the large numbers of cattle which the trail had absorbed in previous
years, there was still an abundance of all ages, anxious for a market. The
demand in the North had constantly been for young cattle, leaving the
matured steers at home. Had Mr. Lovell's contracts that year called for
forty thousand five and six year old beeves, instead of twenty, there
would have been the same inexhaustible supply from which to pick and
choose. But with only one herd yet to secure, and ample offerings on every
hand, there was no necessity for a hurry. Many of the herds driven the
year before found no sale, and were compelled to winter in the North at
the drover's risk. In the early spring of '84, there was a decided lull
over the enthusiasm of the two previous years, during the former of which
the trail afforded an outlet for nearly seven hundred thousand Texas
cattle.</p>
<p>In regard to horses we were well outfitted. During the summer of '83, Don
Lovell had driven four herds, two on Indian contract and two of younger
cattle on speculation. Of the latter, one was sold in Dodge for delivery
on the Purgatory River in southern Colorado, while the other went to
Ogalalla, and was disposed of and received at that point. In both cases
there was no chance to sell the saddle horses, and they returned to Dodge
and were sent to pasture down the river in the settlements. My brother,
Bob Quirk, had driven one of the other herds to an agency in the Indian
Territory. After making the delivery, early in August, on his employer's
orders, he had brought his remuda and outfit into Dodge, the horses being
also sent to pasture and the men home to Texas. I had made the trip that
year to the Pine Ridge Agency in Dakota with thirty-five hundred beeves,
under Flood as foreman. Don Lovell was present at the delivery, and as
there was no hope of effecting a sale of the saddle stock among the
Indians, after delivering the outfit at the nearest railroad, I was given
two men and the cook, and started back over the trail for Dodge with the
remuda. The wagon was a drawback, but on reaching Ogalalla, an emigrant
outfit offered me a fair price for the mules and commissary, and I sold
them. Lashing our rations and blankets on two pack-horses, we turned our
backs on the Platte and crossed the Arkansaw at Dodge on the seventh day.</p>
<p>But instead of the remainder of the trip home by rail, as we fondly
expected, the programme had changed. Lovell and Flood had arrived in Dodge
some ten days before, and looking over the situation, had come to the
conclusion it was useless even to offer our remudas. As remnants of that
year's drive, there had concentrated in and around that market something
like ten thousand saddle horses. Many of these were from central and north
Texas, larger and better stock than ours, even though care had been used
in selecting the latter. So on their arrival, instead of making any effort
to dispose of our own, the drover and his foreman had sized up the
congested condition of the market, and turned buyers. They had bought two
whole remudas, and picked over five or six others until their purchases
amounted to over five hundred head. Consequently on our reaching Dodge
with the Pine Ridge horses, I was informed that they were going to send
all the saddle stock back over the trail to the ranch and that I was to
have charge of the herd. Had the trip been in the spring and the other
way, I certainly would have felt elated over my promotion. Our beef herd
that year had been put up in Dimmit County, and from there to the Pine
Ridge Agency and back to the ranch would certainly be a summer's work to
gratify an ordinary ambition.</p>
<p>In the mean time and before our arrival, Flood had brought up all the
stock and wagons from the settlement, and established a camp on Mulberry
Creek, south of Dodge on the trail. He had picked up two Texans who were
anxious to see their homes once more, and the next day at noon we started.
The herd numbered a thousand and sixty head, twenty of which were
work-mules. The commissary which was to accompany us was laden principally
with harness; and waving Flood farewell, we turned homeward, leaving
behind unsold of that year's drive only two wagons. Lovell had instructed
us never to ride the same horse twice, and wherever good grass and water
were encountered, to kill as much time as possible. My employer was
enthusiastic over the idea, and well he might be, for a finer lot of
saddle horses were not in the possession of any trail drover, while those
purchased in Dodge could have been resold in San Antonio at a nice profit.
Many of the horses had run idle several months and were in fine condition.
With the allowance of four men and a cook, a draft-book for personal
expenses, and over a thousand horses from which to choose a mount, I felt
like an embryo foreman, even if it was a back track and the drag end of
the season. Turning everything scot free at night, we reached the ranch in
old Medina in six weeks, actually traveling about forty days.</p>
<p>But now, with the opening of the trail season almost at hand, the trials
of past years were forgotten in the enthusiasm of the present. I had a
distinct recollection of numerous resolves made on rainy nights, while
holding a drifting herd, that this was positively my last trip over the
trail. Now, however, after a winter of idleness, my worst fear was that I
might be left at home with the ranch work, and thus miss the season's
outing entirely. There were new charms in the Buford contract which
thrilled me,—its numerical requirements, the sight of the
Yellowstone again, and more, to be present at the largest delivery of the
year to the government. Rather than have missed the trip, I would have
gladly cooked or wrangled the horses for one of the outfits.</p>
<p>On separating, Lovell urged his foreman and myself to be at the depot in
good time to catch our train. That our employer's contracts for the year
would require financial assistance, both of us were fully aware. The
credit of Don Lovell was gilt edge, not that he was a wealthy cowman, but
the banks and moneyed men of the city recognized his business ability.
Nearly every year since he began driving cattle, assistance had been
extended him, but the promptness with which he had always met his
obligations made his patronage desirable.</p>
<p>Flood and I had a number of errands to look after for the boys on the
ranch and ourselves, and, like countrymen, reached the depot fully an hour
before the train was due. Not possessed of enough gumption to inquire if
the westbound was on time, we loitered around until some other passengers
informed us that it was late. Just as we were on the point of starting
back to town, Lovell drove up in a hack, and the three of us paced the
platform until the arrival of the belated train.</p>
<p>"Well, boys, everything looks serene," said our employer, when we had
walked to the farther end of the depot. "I can get all the money I need,
even if we shipped part way, which I don't intend to do. The banks admit
that cattle are a slow sale and a shade lower this spring, and are not as
free with their money as a year or two ago. My bankers detained me over an
hour until they could send for a customer who claimed to have a very fine
lot of beeves for sale in Lasalle County. That he is anxious to sell there
is no doubt, for he offered them to me on my own time, and agrees to meet
any one's prices. I half promised to come back next week and go down with
him to Lasalle and look his cattle over. If they show up right, there will
be no trouble in buying them, which will complete our purchases. It is my
intention, Jim, to give you the herd to fill our earliest delivery. Our
next two occur so near together that you will have to represent me at one
of them. The Buford cattle, being the last by a few weeks, we will both go
up there and see it over with. There are about half a dozen trail foremen
anxious for the two other herds, and while they are good men, I don't know
of any good reason for not pushing my own boys forward. I have already
decided to give Dave Sponsilier and Quince Forrest two of the Buford
herds, and I reckon, Tom, the last one will fall to you."</p>
<p>The darkness in which we were standing shielded my egotism from public
view. But I am conscious that I threw out my brisket several inches and
stood straight on my bow-legs as I thanked old man Don for the foremanship
of his sixth herd. Flood was amused, and told me afterward that my
language was extravagant. There is an old superstition that if a man ever
drinks out of the Rio Grande, it matters not where he roams afterward, he
is certain to come back to her banks again. I had watered my horse in the
Yellowstone in '82, and ever afterward felt an itching to see her again.
And here the opportunity opened before me, not as a common cow-hand, but
as a trail boss and one of three in filling a five million pound
government beef contract! But it was dark and I was afoot, and if I was a
trifle "chesty," there had suddenly come new colorings to my narrow world.</p>
<p>On the arrival of the train, several other westward-bound cowmen boarded
it. We all took seats in the smoker, it being but a two hours' run to our
destination. Flood and I were sitting well forward in the car, the former
almost as elated over my good fortune as myself. "Well, won't old Quince
be all puffed up," said Jim to me, "when the old man tells him he's to
have a herd. Now, I've never said a word in favor of either one of you. Of
course, when Mr. Lovell asked me if I knew certain trail foremen who were
liable to be idle this year, I intimated that he had plenty of material in
his employ to make a few of his own. The old man may be a trifle slow on
reaching a decision, but once he makes up his mind, he's there till the
cows come home. Now, all you and Quince need to do is to make good, for
you couldn't ask for a better man behind you. In making up your outfit,
you want to know every man you hire, and give a preference to gray hairs,
for they're not so liable to admire their shadow in sunny or get homesick
in falling weather. Tom, where you made a ten-strike with the old man was
in accepting that horse herd at Dodge last fall. Had you made a whine or
whimper then, the chances are you wouldn't be bossing a herd this year.
Lovell is a cowman who likes to see a fellow take his medicine with a
smile."</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2HCH0002" id="link2HCH0002"></SPAN></p>
<br/>
<h2> CHAPTER II. ORGANIZING THE FORCES </h2>
<p>Don Lovell and Jim Flood returned from Lasalle County on the last day of
February. They had spent a week along the Upper Nueces, and before
returning to the ranch closed a trade on thirty-four hundred five and six
year old beeves. According to their report, the cattle along the river had
wintered in fine condition, and the grass had already started in the
valley. This last purchase concluded the buying for trail purposes, and
all absent foremen were notified to be on hand at the ranch on March 10,
for the beginning of active operations. Only some ten of us had wintered
at headquarters in Medina County, and as about ninety men would be
required for the season's work, they would have to be secured elsewhere.
All the old foremen expected to use the greater portion of the men who
were in their employ the year before, and could summon them on a few days'
notice. But Forrest and myself were compelled to hire entirely new
outfits, and it was high time we were looking up our help.</p>
<p>One of Flood's regular outfit had married during the winter, and with
Forrest's and my promotion, he had only to secure three new men. He had
dozens of applications from good cow-hands, and after selecting for
himself offered the others to Quince and me. But my brother Bob arrived at
the ranch, from our home in Karnes County, two days later, having also a
surplus of men at his command. Although he did not show any enthusiasm
over my promotion, he offered to help me get up a good outfit of boys. I
had about half a dozen good fellows in view, and on Bob's approval of
them, he selected from his overplus six more as first choice and four as
second. It would take me a week of constant riding to see all these men,
and as Flood and Forrest had made up an outfit for the latter from the
former's available list, Quince and I saddled up and rode away to hire
outfits. Forrest was well acquainted in Wilson, where Lovell had put up
several trail herds, and as it joined my home county, we bore each other
company the first day.</p>
<p>A long ride brought us to the Atascosa, where we stayed all night. The
next morning we separated, Quince bearing due east for Floresville, while
I continued southeast towards my home near Cibollo Ford on the San Antonio
River. It had been over a year since I had seen the family, and on
reaching the ranch, my father gruffly noticed me, but my mother and
sisters received me with open arms. I was a mature man of twenty-eight at
the time, mustached, and stood six feet to a plumb-line. The family were
cognizant of my checkered past, and although never mentioning it, it
seemed as if my misfortunes had elevated me in the estimation of my
sisters, while to my mother I had become doubly dear.</p>
<p>During the time spent in that vicinity, I managed to reach home at night
as often as possible. Constantly using fresh horses, I covered a wide
circle of country, making one ride down the river into Goliad County of
over fifty miles, returning the next day. Within a week I had made up my
outfit, including the horse-wrangler and cook. Some of the men were ten
years my senior, while only a few were younger, but I knew that these
latter had made the trip before and were as reliable as their elders. The
wages promised that year were fifty dollars a month, the men to furnish
only their own saddles and blankets, and at that figure I picked two
pastoral counties, every man bred to the occupation. The trip promised six
months' work with return passage, and I urged every one employed to make
his appearance at headquarters, in Medina, on or before the 15th of the
month. There was no railroad communication through Karnes and Goliad
counties at that time, and all the boys were assured that their private
horses would have good pasturage at the home ranch while they were away,
and I advised them all to come on horseback. By this method they would
have a fresh horse awaiting them on their return from the North with which
to continue their homeward journey. All the men engaged were unmarried,
and taken as a whole, I flattered myself on having secured a crack outfit.</p>
<p>I was in a hurry to get back to the ranch. There had been nothing said
about the remudas before leaving, and while we had an abundance of horses,
no one knew them better than I did. For that reason I wanted to be present
when their allotment was made, for I knew that every foreman would try to
get the best mounts, and I did not propose to stand behind the door and
take the culls. Many of the horses had not had a saddle on them in eight
months, while all of them had run idle during the winter in a large
mesquite pasture and were in fine condition with the opening of spring. So
bidding my folks farewell, I saddled at noon and took a cross-country
course for the ranch, covering the hundred and odd miles in a day and a
half. Reaching headquarters late at night, I found that active
preparations had been going on during my absence. There were new wagons to
rig, harness to oil, and a carpenter was then at work building chuck-boxes
for each of the six commissaries. A wholesale house in the city had
shipped out a stock of staple supplies, almost large enough to start a
store. There were whole coils of new rope of various sizes, from lariats
to corral cables, and a sufficient amount of the largest size to make a
stack of hobbles as large as a haycock. Four new branding-irons to the
wagon, the regulation "Circle Dot," completed the main essentials.</p>
<p>All the foremen had reported at the ranch, with the exception of Forrest,
who came in the next evening with three men. The division of the horses
had not even come up for discussion, but several of the boys about
headquarters who were friendly to my interests posted me that the older
foremen were going to claim first choice. Archie Tolleston, next to Jim
Flood in seniority in Lovell's employ, had spent every day riding among
the horses, and had even boasted that he expected to claim fifteen of the
best for his own saddle. Flood was not so particular, as his destination
was in southern Dakota, but my brother Bob was again ticketed for the Crow
Agency in Montana, and would naturally expect a good remuda. Tolleston was
going to western Wyoming, while the Fort Buford cattle were a two-weeks'
later delivery and fully five hundred miles farther travel. On my return
Lovell was in the city, but I felt positive that if he took a hand in the
division, Tolleston would only run on the rope once.</p>
<p>A few days before the appointed time, the men began thronging into
headquarters. Down to the minutest detail about the wagons and mule teams,
everything was shipshape. The commissary department was stocked for a
month, and everything was ready to harness in and move. Lovell's
headquarters was a stag ranch, and as fast as the engaged cooks reported,
they were assigned to wagons, and kept open house in relieving the home
cocinero. In the absence of our employer, Flood was virtually at the head
of affairs, and artfully postponed the division of horses until the last
moment. My outfit had all come in in good time, and we were simply resting
on our oars until the return of old man Don from San Antonio. The men were
jubilant and light-hearted as a lot of school-boys, and with the exception
of a feeling of jealousy among the foremen over the remudas, we were a gay
crowd, turning night into day. But on the return of our employer, all
frivolity ceased, and the ranch stood at attention. The only unfinished
work was the division of the horses, and but a single day remained before
the agreed time for starting. Jim Flood had met his employer at the
station the night before, and while returning to the ranch, the two
discussed the apportionment of the saddle stock. The next morning all the
foremen were called together, when the drover said to his trail bosses:</p>
<p>"Boys, I suppose you are all anxious to get a good remuda for this
summer's trip. Well, I've got them for you. The only question is, how can
we distribute them equitably so that all interests will be protected. One
herd may not have near the distance to travel that the others have. It
would look unjust to give it the best horses, and yet it may have the most
trouble. Our remudas last year were all picked animals. They had an easy
year's work. With the exception of a few head, we have the same mounts and
in much better condition than last year. This is about my idea of
equalizing things. You four old foremen will use your remudas of last
year. Then each of you six bosses select twenty-five head each of the
Dodge horses,—turn and turn about. Add those to your old remudas,
and cull back your surplus, allowing ten to the man, twelve to the
foreman, and five extra to each herd in case of cripples or of galled
backs. By this method, each herd will have two dozen prime saddlers, the
pick of a thousand picked ones, and fit for any man who was ever in my
employ. I'm breaking in two new foremen this year, and they shall have no
excuse for not being mounted, and will divide the remainder. Now, take
four men apiece and round up the saddle stock, and have everything in
shape to go into camp to-night. I'll be present at the division, and I
warn you all that I want no clashing."</p>
<p>A ranch remuda was driven in, and we saddled. There were about thirty
thousand acres in the pasture, and by eleven o'clock everything was thrown
together. The private horses of all the boys had been turned into a
separate inclosure, and before the cutting out commenced, every mother's
son, including Don Lovell, arrived at the round-up. There were no corrals
on the ranch which would accommodate such a body of animals, and thus the
work had to be done in the open; but with the force at hand we threw a
cordon around them, equal to a corral, and the cutting out to the four
quarters commenced.</p>
<p>The horses were gentle and handled easily. Forrest and I turned to and
helped our old foreman cut out his remuda of the year before. There were
several horses in my old mount that I would have liked to have again, but
I knew it was useless to try and trade Jim out of them, as he knew their
qualities and would have robbed me in demanding their equivalent. When the
old remudas were again separated, they were counted and carefully looked
over by both foremen and men, and were open to the inspection of all who
cared to look. Everything was passing very pleasantly, and the cutting of
the extra twenty-five began. Then my selfishness was weighed in the
balance and found to be full weight. I had ridden over a hundred of the
best of them, but when any one appealed to me, even my own dear brother, I
was as dumb as an oyster about a horse. Tolleston, especially, cursed,
raved, and importuned me to help him get a good private mount, but I was
as innocent as I was immovable. The trip home from Dodge was no pleasure
jaunt, and now I was determined to draw extra pay in getting the cream of
that horse herd. There were other features governing my actions: Flood was
indifferent; Forrest, at times, was cruel to horses, and had I helped my
brother, I might have been charged with favoritism. Dave Sponsilier was a
good horseman, as his selections proved, and I was not wasting any love
and affection on Archie Tolleston that day, anyhow.</p>
<p>That no undue advantage should be taken, Lovell kept tally of every horse
cut out, and once each foreman had taken his number, he was waved out of
the herd. I did the selecting of my own, and with the assistance of one
man, was constantly waiting my turn. With all the help he could use,
Tolleston was over half an hour making his selections, and took the only
blind horse in the entire herd. He was a showy animal, a dapple gray,
fully fifteen hands high, bred in north Texas, and belonged to one of the
whole remudas bought in Dodge. At the time of his purchase, neither Lovell
nor Flood detected anything wrong, and no one could see anything in the
eyeball which would indicate he was moon-eyed. Yet any horseman need only
notice him closely to be satisfied of his defect, as he was constantly
shying from other horses and objects and smelled everything which came
within his reach. There were probably half a dozen present who knew of his
blindness, but not a word was said until all the extras were chosen and
the culling out of the overplus of the various remudas began. It started
in snickers, and before the cutting back was over developed into peals of
laughter, as man after man learned that the dapple gray in Tolleston's
remuda was blind.</p>
<p>Among the very last to become acquainted with the fact was the trail
foreman himself. After watching the horse long enough to see his mistake,
Tolleston culled the gray back and rode into the herd to claim another.
But the drover promptly summoned his foreman out, and, as they met, Lovell
said to his trail boss, "Arch, you're no better than anybody else. I
bought that gray and paid my good money for him. No doubt but the man who
sold him has laughed about it often since, and if ever we meet, I'll take
my hat off and compliment him on being the only person who ever sold me a
moon-eyed horse. I'm still paying my tuition, and you needn't flare up
when the laugh's on you. You have a good remuda without him, and the only
way you can get another horse out of that herd is with the permission of
Quince Forrest and Tom Quirk."</p>
<p>"Well, if the permission of those new foremen is all I lack, then I'll cut
all the horses I want," retorted Tolleston, and galloped back towards the
herd. But Quince and I were after him like a flash, followed leisurely by
Lovell. As he slacked his mount to enter the mass of animals, I passed
him, jerking the bridle reins from his hand. Throwing my horse on his
haunches, I turned just as Forrest slapped Tolleston on the back, and
said: "Look-ee here, Arch; just because you're a little hot under the
collar, don't do anything brash, for fear you may regret it afterward. I'm
due to take a little pasear myself this summer, and I always did like to
be well mounted. Now, don't get your back up or attempt to stand up any
bluffs, for I can whip you in any sized circle you can name. You never saw
me burn powder, did you? Well, just you keep on acting the d——
fool if you want a little smoke thrown in your face. Just fool with me and
I'll fog you till you look like an angel in the clouds."</p>
<p>But old man Don reached us, and raised his hand. I threw the reins back
over the horse's head. Tolleston was white with rage, but before he could
speak our employer waved us aside and said, "Tom, you and Quince clear
right out of here and I'll settle this matter. Arch, there's your remuda.
Take it and go about your business or say you don't want to. Now, we know
each other, and I'll not mince or repeat any words with you. Go on."</p>
<p>"Not an inch will I move until I get another horse," hissed Tolleston
between gasps. "If it lies between you and me, then I'll have one in place
of that gray, or you'll get another foreman. Now, you have my terms and
ticket."</p>
<p>"Very well then, Archie; that changes the programme entirely," replied
Lovell, firmly. "You'll find your private horse in the small pasture, and
we'll excuse you for the summer. Whenever a man in my employ gets the
impression that I can't get along without him, that moment he becomes
useless to me. It seems that you are bloated with that idea, and a
season's rest and quiet may cool you down and make a useful man of you
again. Remember that you're always welcome at my ranch, and don't let this
make us strangers," he called back as he turned away.</p>
<p>Riding over with us to where a group were sitting on their horses, our
employer scanned the crowd without saying a word. Turning halfway in his
saddle, he looked over towards Flood's remuda and said: "One of you boys
please ride over and tell Paul I want him." During the rather embarrassing
interim, the conversation instantly changed, and we borrowed tobacco and
rolled cigarettes to kill time.</p>
<p>Priest was rather slow in making his appearance, riding leisurely, but on
coming up innocently inquired of his employer, "Did you want to see me?"</p>
<p>"Yes. Paul, I've just lost one of my foremen. I need a good reliable man
to take a herd to Fort Washakie. It's an Indian agency on the head waters
of the North Platte in Wyoming. Will you tackle the job?"</p>
<p>"A good soldier is always subject to orders," replied The Rebel with a
military salute. "If you have a herd for delivery in Wyoming, give me the
men and horses, and I'll put the cattle there if possible. You are the
commandant in the field, and I am subject to instructions."</p>
<p>"There's your remuda and outfit, then," said Lovell, pointing to the one
intended for Tolleston, "and you'll get a commissary at the ranch and go
into camp this evening. You'll get your herd in Nueces County, and Jim
will assist in the receiving. Any other little details will all be
arranged before you get away."</p>
<p>Calling for all the men in Tolleston's outfit, the two rode away for that
remuda. Shortly before the trouble arose, our employer instructed those
with the Buford cattle to take ten extra horses for each herd. There were
now over a hundred and forty head to be culled back, and Sponsilier was
entitled to ten of them. In order to be sure of our numbers, we counted
the remaining band, and Forrest and I trimmed them down to two hundred and
fifty-four head. As this number was too small to be handled easily in the
open, we decided to take them into the corrals for the final division.
After the culling back was over, and everything had started for the ranch,
to oblige Sponsilier, I remained behind and helped him to retrim his
remuda. Unless one knew the horses personally, it was embarrassing even to
try and pick ten of the best ones from the overplus. But I knew many of
them at first hand, and at Dave's request, after picking out the extra
ones, continued selecting others in exchange for horses in his old band.
We spent nearly an hour cutting back and forth, or until we were both
satisfied that his saddle stock could not be improved from the material at
hand.</p>
<p>The ranch headquarters were fully six miles from the round-up. Leaving
Sponsilier delighted with the change in his remuda, I rode to overtake the
undivided band which were heading for the ranch corrals. On coming up with
them, Forrest proposed that we divide the horses by a running cut in
squads of ten, and toss for choice. Once they were in the corrals, this
could have been easily done by simply opening a gate and allowing blocks
of ten to pass alternately from the main into smaller inclosures. But I
was expecting something like this from Quince, and had entirely different
plans of my own. Forrest and I were good friends, but he was a foxy
rascal, and I had never wavered in my determination to get the pick of
that horse herd. Had I accepted his proposal, the chance of a spinning
coin might have given him a decided advantage, and I declined his
proposition. I had a remuda in sight that my very being had hungered for,
and now I would take no chance of losing it. But on the other hand, I
proposed to Forrest that he might have the assistance of two men in
Flood's outfit who had accompanied the horse herd home from Dodge. In the
selecting of Jim's extra twenty-five, the opinion of these two lads, as
the chosen horses proved, was a decided help to their foreman. But Quince
stood firm, and arguing the matter, we reached the corrals and penned the
band.</p>
<p>The two top bunches were held separate and were left a mile back on the
prairie, under herd. The other remudas were all in sight of the ranch,
while a majority of the men were eating a late dinner. Still contending
for his point, Forrest sent a lad to the house to ask our employer to come
over to the corrals. On his appearance, accompanied by Flood, each of us
stated our proposition.</p>
<p>"Well, the way I size this up," said old man Don, "one of you wants to
rely on his own judgment and the other don't. It looks to me, Quince, you
want a gambler's chance where you can't lose. Tom's willing to bank on his
own judgment, but you ain't. Now, I like a man who does his own thinking,
and to give you a good lesson in that line, why, divide them, horse and
horse, turn about. Now, I'll spin this coin for first pick, and while it's
in the air, Jim will call the turn.... Tom wins first choice."</p>
<p>"That's all right, Mr. Lovell," said Quince, smilingly. "I just got the
idea that you wanted the remudas for the Buford herds to be equally good.
How can you expect it when Tom knows every horse and I never saddled one
of them. Give me the same chance, and I might know them as well as the
little boy knew his pap."</p>
<p>"You had the same chance," I put in, "but didn't want it. You were offered
the Pine Ridge horses last year to take back to Dodge, and you kicked like
a bay steer. But I swallowed their dust to the Arkansaw, and from there
home we lived in clouds of alkali. You went home drunk and dressed up,
with a cigar in your mouth and your feet through the car window, claiming
you was a brother-in-law to Jay Gould, and simply out on a tour of
inspection. Now you expect me to give you the benefit of my experience and
rob myself. Not this summer, John Quincy."</p>
<p>But rather than let Forrest feel that he was being taken advantage of, I
repeated my former proposition. Accepting it as a last resort, the two
boys were sent for and the dividing commenced. Remounting our horses, we
entered the large corral, and as fast as they were selected the different
outfits were either roped or driven singly through a guarded gate. It took
over an hour of dusty work to make the division, but when it was finished
I had a remuda of a hundred and fifty-two saddle horses that would make a
man willing to work for his board and the privilege of riding them.
Turning out of the corrals, Priest and I accompanied the horses out on the
prairie where our toppy ones were being grazed. Paul was tickled over my
outfit of saddle stock, but gave me several hints that he was entitled to
another picked mount. I attempted to explain that he had a good remuda,
but he still insisted, and I promised him if he would be at my wagon the
next morning when we corralled, he should have a good one. I could well
afford to be generous with my old bunkie.</p>
<p>There now only remained the apportionment of the work-stock. Four mules
were allowed to the wagon, and in order to have them in good condition
they had been grain-fed for the past month. In their allotment the Buford
herds were given the best teams, and when mine was pointed out by my
employer, the outfit assisted the cook to harness in. Giving him
instructions to go into camp on a creek three miles south of headquarters,
my wagon was the second one to get away. Some of the teams bolted at the
start, and only for timely assistance Sponsilier's commissary would have
been overturned in the sand. Two of the wagons headed west for Uvalde,
while my brother Bob's started southeast for Bee County. The other two
belonging to Flood and The Rebel would camp on the same creek as mine,
their herds being also south. Once the wagons were off, the saddle stock
was brought in and corralled for our first mounts. The final allotment of
horses to the men would not take place until the herds were ready to be
received, and until then, they would be ridden uniformly but
promiscuously. With instructions from our employer to return to the ranch
after making camp, the remudas were started after the wagons.</p>
<p>On our return after darkness, the ranch was as deserted as a school-house
on Saturday. A Mexican cook and a few regular ranch hands were all that
were left. Archie Tolleston had secured his horse and quit headquarters
before any one had even returned from the round-up. When the last of the
foremen came in, our employer delivered his final messages. "Boys," said
he, "I'll only detain you a few minutes. I'm going west in the morning to
Uvalde County, and will be present at the receiving of Quince and Dave's
herds. After they start, I'll come back to the city and take stage to
Oakville. But you go right ahead and receive your cattle, Bob, for we
don't know what may turn up. Flood will help Tom first, and then Paul, to
receive their cattle. That will give the Buford herds the first start, and
I'll be waiting for you at Abilene when you reach there. And above all
else, boys, remember that I've strained my credit in this drive, and that
the cattle must be A 1, and that we must deliver them on the spot in prime
condition. Now, that's all, but you'd better be riding so as to get an
early start in the morning."</p>
<p>Our employer walked with us to the outer gate where our horses stood at
the hitch-rack. That he was reticent in his business matters was well
known among all his old foremen, including Forrest and myself. If he had a
confidant among his men, Jim Flood was the man—and there were a few
things he did not know. As we mounted our horses to return to our
respective camps, old man Don quietly took my bridle reins in hand and
allowed the others to ride away. "I want a parting word with you, Tom,"
said he a moment later. "Something has happened to-day which will require
the driving of the Buford herds in some road brand other than the 'Circle
Dot.' The first blacksmith shop you pass, have your irons altered into
'Open A's,' and I'll do the same with Quince and Dave's brands. Of the why
or wherefore of this, say nothing to any one, as no one but myself knows.
Don't breathe a word even to Flood, for he don't know any more than he
should. When the time comes, if it ever does, you'll know all that is
necessary—or nothing. That's all."</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2HCH0003" id="link2HCH0003"></SPAN></p>
<br/>
<h2> CHAPTER III. RECEIVING AT LOS LOBOS </h2>
<p>The trip to Lasalle County was mere pastime. All three of the outfits kept
in touch with each other, camping far enough apart to avoid any conflict
in night-herding the remudas. The only incident to mar the pleasure of the
outing was the discovery of ticks in many of our horses' ears. The pasture
in which they had wintered was somewhat brushy, and as there had been no
frost to kill insect life, myriads of seed-ticks had dropped from the
mesquite thickets upon the animals when rubbing against or passing
underneath them. As the inner side of a horse's ear is both warm and
tender, that organ was frequently infested with this pest, whose ravages
often undermined the supporting cartilages and produced the drooping or
"gotch" ear. In my remuda over one half the horses were afflicted with
ticks, and many of them it was impossible to bridle, owing to the inflamed
condition of their ears. Fortunately we had with us some standard
preparations for blistering, so, diluting this in axle-grease, we threw
every animal thus affected and thoroughly swabbed his ears. On reaching
the Nueces River, near the western boundary of Lasalle County, the other
two outfits continued on down that stream for their destination in the
lower country. Flood remained behind with me, and going into camp on the
river with my outfit, the two of us rode over to Los Lobos Ranch and
announced ourselves as ready to receive the cattle. Dr. Beaver, the seller
of the herd, was expecting us, and sending word of our arrival to
neighboring cowmen, we looked over the corrals before returning to camp.
They had built a new branding-chute and otherwise improved their
facilities for handling cattle. The main inclosure had been built of heavy
palisades in an early day, but recently several of smaller sized lumber
had been added, making the most complete corrals I had ever seen. An
abundance of wood was at hand for heating the branding-irons, and every
little detail to facilitate the work had been provided for. Giving notice
that we would receive every morning on the open prairie only, we declined
an invitation to remain at the ranch and returned to my wagon.</p>
<p>In the valley the grass was well forward. We had traveled only some twenty
miles a day coming down, and our horses had fared well. But as soon as we
received any cattle, night-herding the remuda would cease, and we must
either hobble or resort to other measures. John Levering was my
horse-wrangler. He had made two trips over the trail with Fant's herds in
the same capacity, was careful, humane, and an all-round horseman. In
employing a cook, I had given the berth to Neal Parent, an old boyhood
chum of mine. He never amounted to much as a cow-hand, but was a
lighthearted, happy fool; and as cooking did not require much sense, I
gave him the chance to make his first trip. Like a court jester, he kept
the outfit in fine spirits and was the butt of all jokes. In entertaining
company he was in a class by himself, and spoke with marked familiarity of
all the prominent cowmen in southern Texas. To a stranger the inference
might be easily drawn that Lovell was in his employ.</p>
<p>As we were expecting to receive cattle on the third day, the next morning
the allotment of horses was made. The usual custom of giving the foreman
first choice was claimed, and I cut twelve of solid colors but not the
largest ones. Taking turns, the outfit roped out horse after horse until
only the ten extra ones were left. In order that these should bear a fair
share in the work, I took one of them for a night-horse and allotted the
others to the second, third, and last guard in a similar capacity. This
gave the last three watches two horses apiece for night work, but with the
distinct understanding that in case of accident or injury to any horse in
the remuda, they could be recalled. There was little doubt that before the
summer ended, they would be claimed to fill vacancies in the regular
mounts. Flood had kept behind only two horses with which to overtake the
other outfits, and during his stay with us would ride these extras and
loans from my mount.</p>
<p>The entire morning was spent working with the remuda. Once a man knew his
mount, extra attention was shown each horse. There were witches' bridles
to be removed from their manes, extra long tails were thinned out to the
proper length, and all hoofs trimmed short. The horses were fast shedding
their winter coats, matting the saddle blankets with falling hair, and
unless carefully watched, galled backs would result. The branding-irons
had been altered en route, and about noon a vaquero came down the river
and reported that the second round-up of the day would meet just over the
county line in Dimmit. He belonged at Los Lobos, and reported the morning
rodeo as containing over five hundred beeves, which would be ready for
delivery at our pleasure. We made him remain for dinner, after which Flood
and I saddled up and returned with him. We reached the round-up just as
the cutting-out finished. They were a fine lot of big rangy beeves, and
Jim suggested that we pass upon them at once. The seller agreed to hold
them overnight, and Flood and I culled back about one hundred and twenty
which were under age or too light. The round-up outfit strung the cattle
out and counted them, reporting a few over seven hundred head. This count
was merely informal and for the information of the seller; but in the
morning the final one would be made, in which we could take a hand.</p>
<p>After the cut had started in for the ranch, we loitered along, looking
them over, and I noticed several that might have been thrown out. "Well,
now," said Flood, "if you are going to be so very choice as all that, I
might as well ride on. You can't use me if that bunch needs any more
trimming. I call them a fine lot of beeves. It's all right for Don to rib
the boys up and make them think that the cattle have to be top-notchers.
I've watched him receive too often; he's about the easiest man I know to
ring in short ages on. Just so a steer looks nice, it's hard for the old
man to turn one back. I've seen him receiving three-year-olds, when one
fourth of the cattle passed on were short twos. And if you call his
attention to one, he'll just smile that little smile of his, and say,
'yes, he may be shy a few months, but he'll grow.' But then that's just
old man Don's weakness for cattle; he can't look a steer in the face
without falling in love with him. Now, I've received before when by
throwing out one half the stock offered, you couldn't get as uniform a
bunch of beeves as those are. But you go right ahead, Tom, and be sure
that every hoof you accept will dress five hundred pounds at Fort Buford.
I'll simply sit around and clerk and help you count and give you a good
chance to make a reputation."</p>
<p>Los Lobos was still an open range. They claimed to have over ten thousand
mixed cattle in the straight ranch brand. There had been no demand for
matured beeves for several years, and now on effecting this sale they were
anxious to deliver all their grown steers. Dr. Beaver informed us that,
previous to our arrival, his foreman had been throwing everything in on
the home range, and that he hoped to deliver to us over two thousand head
from his own personal holdings. But he was liberal with his neighbors, for
in the contingent just passed upon, there must have been over a hundred
head in various ranch brands. Assuring him that we would be on hand in the
morning to take possession of the cattle, and requesting him to have a
fire burning, on coming opposite the camp, we turned off and rode for our
wagon. It meant a big day's work to road-brand this first contingent, and
with the first sign of dawn, my outfit were riding for Los Lobos. We were
encamped about three miles from the corrals, and leaving orders for the
cook to follow up, the camp was abandoned with the exception of the
remuda. It was barely sun-up when we counted and took possession of the
beeves. On being relieved, the foreman of Los Lobos took the ranch outfit
and started off to renew the gathering. We penned the cattle without any
trouble, and as soon as the irons were ready, a chuteful were run in and
the branding commenced. This branding-chute was long enough to chamber
eight beeves. It was built about a foot wide at the bottom and flared
upward just enough to prevent an animal from turning round. A heavy gate
closed the exit, while bull-bars at the rear prevented the occupant from
backing out. A high platform ran along either side of the branding-chute,
on which the men stood while handling the irons.</p>
<p>Two men did the branding. "Runt" Pickett attended the fire, passing up the
heated irons, and dodging the cold branding-steel. A single iron was often
good for several animals, and sometimes a chuteful was branded with two
irons. It was necessary that the work should be well done; not that a five
months' trip required it, but the unforeseen must be guarded against. Many
trail herds had met disaster and been scattered to the four winds with
nothing but a road brand to identify them afterward. The cattle were
changing owners, and custom decreed that an abstract of title should be
indelibly seared on their sides. The first guard, Jake Blair, Morg
Tussler, and Clay Zilligan, were detailed to cut and drive the squads into
the chute. These three were the only mounted men, the others being placed
so as to facilitate the work. Cattle are as innocent as they are strong,
and in this necessary work everything was done quietly, care being taken
to prevent them from becoming excited. As fast as they were released from
the chute, Dr. Beaver took a list of the ranch brands, in order to bill of
sale them to Lovell and settle with his neighbors.</p>
<p>The work moved with alacrity. As one chuteful was being freed the next one
was entering. Gates closed in their faces and the bull-bars at the rear
locked them as in a vice. We were averaging a hundred an hour, but the
smoke from the burning hair was offensive to the lungs. During the
forenoon Burl Van Vedder and Vick Wolf "spelled" Flood and myself for half
an hour at a time, or until we could recover from the nauseous fumes. When
the cook called us to dinner, we had turned out nearly five hundred
branded cattle. No sooner was the midday meal bolted than the cook was
ordered back to camp with his wagon, the branded contingent of cattle
following in charge of the first guard. Less than half an hour was lost in
refreshing the inner man, and ordering "G—G" Cederdall, Tim Stanley,
and Jack Splann of the second guard into their saddles to take the place
of the relieved men, we resumed our task. The dust of the corrals settled
on us unheeded, the smoke of the fire mingled with that of the singeing
hair and its offensive odors, bringing tears to our eyes, but the work
never abated until the last steer had passed the chute and bore the "Open
A."</p>
<p>The work over, a pretense was made at washing the dust and grime from our
faces. It was still early in the day, and starting the cattle for camp, I
instructed the boys to water and graze them as long as they would stand
up. The men all knew their places on guard, this having been previously
arranged; and joining Dr. Beaver, Jim and I rode for the ranch about a
mile distant. The doctor was a genial host, and prescribed a series of
mint-juleps, after which he proposed that we ride out and meet the cattle
gathered during the day. The outfit had been working a section of country
around some lagoons, south of the ranch, and it was fully six o'clock when
we met them, heading homeward. The cattle were fully up to the standard of
the first bunch, and halting the herd we trimmed them down and passed on
them. After Flood rode out of this second contingent, I culled back about
a dozen light weights. On finishing, Jim gave me a quiet wink, and said
something to Dr. Beaver about a new broom. But I paid no attention to
these remarks; in a country simply teeming with prime beeves, I was
determined to get a herd to my liking. Dr. Beaver had assured Lovell that
he and his neighbors would throw together over four thousand beeves in
making up the herd, and now I was perfectly willing that they should. It
would take two days longer to gather the cattle on the Los Lobos range,
and then there were the outside offerings, which were supposed to number
fully two thousand. There was no excuse for not being choice.</p>
<p>On returning to Los Lobos about dusk, rather than offend its owner, Flood
consented to remain at the ranch overnight, but I rode for camp. Darkness
had fallen on my reaching the wagon, the herd had been bedded down, and
Levering felt so confident that the remuda was contented that he had
concluded to night-herd them himself until midnight, and then turn them
loose until dawn. He had belled a couple of the leaders, and assured me
that he would have them in hand before sun-up. The cook was urging me to
supper, but before unsaddling, I rode around both herd and remuda. The
cattle were sleeping nicely, and the boys assured me that they had got a
splendid fill on them before bedding down. That was the only safe thing to
do, and after circling the saddle stock on the opposite side of camp, I
returned to find that a stranger had arrived during my brief absence.
Parent had fully enlightened him as to who he was, who the outfit were,
the destination of the herd, the names of both buyer and seller, and, on
my riding in, was delivering a voluble dissertation on the tariff and the
possible effect on the state of putting hides on the free list. And
although in cow-camps a soldier's introduction is usually sufficient, the
cook inquired the stranger's name and presented me to our guest with due
formality. Supper being waiting, the stranger was invited to take pot-luck
with us, and before the meal was over recognized me. He was a deputy
cattle inspector for Dimmit County, and had issued the certificate for
Flood's herd the year before. He had an eye for the main chance, and
informed me that fully one half the cattle making up our herd belonged to
Dimmit; that the county line was only a mile up the river, and that if I
would allow the herd to drift over into his territory, he would shade the
legal rate. The law compelling the inspection of herds before they could
be moved out of the county, like the rain, fell upon the just and the
unjust. It was not the intent of the law to impose a burden on an honest
drover. Yet he was classed with the rustler, and must have in his
possession a certificate of inspection before he could move out a
purchased herd, or be subject to arrest. A list of brands was recorded, at
the county seat, of every herd leaving, and if occasion required could be
referred to in future years. No railroad would receive any consignment of
hides or live stock, unless accompanied by a certificate from the county
inspector. The legal rate was ten cents on the first hundred, and three
cents on all over that number, frequently making the office a lucrative
one.</p>
<p>Once the object of his call was made clear, I warmed to our guest. If the
rate allowed by law was enforced, it meant an expense of over a hundred
dollars for a certificate of inspection covering both herd and saddle
stock. We did not take out certificates in Medina on the remudas as a
matter of economy. By waiting until the herd was ready, the two would be
inspected as one, and the lower rate apply. So I urged the deputy to make
himself at home and share my blankets. Pretending that I remembered him
well, I made numerous inquiries about the ranch where we received our herd
the year before, and by the time to turn in, we were on the most friendly
terms. The next morning I offered him a horse from our extras, assuring
him that Flood would be delighted to renew his acquaintance, and invited
him to go with us for the day. Turning his horse among ours, he accepted
and rode away with us. The cattle passed on the evening before had camped
out several miles from the corrals and were grazing in when we met them.
Flood and the Doctor joined us shortly afterward, and I had a quiet word
with Jim before he and the inspector met. After the count was over, Flood
made a great ado over my guest and gave him the glad hand as if he had
been a long-lost brother. We were a trifle short-handed the second day,
and on my guest volunteering to help, I assigned him to Runt Pickett's
place at the fire, where he shortly developed a healthy sweat. As we did
not have a large bunch of beeves to brand that day, the wagon did not come
over and we branded them at a single shift. It was nearly one o'clock when
we finished, and instead of going in to Los Lobos, we left the third
guard, Wayne Outcault, "Dorg" Seay, and Owen Ubery, to graze the cattle
over to our camp.</p>
<p>The remainder of the afternoon was spent in idleness and in the
entertainment of our guest. Official-like, he pretended he could hardly
spare the time to remain another night, but was finally prevailed on and
did so. After dark, I took him some distance from camp, and the two of us
had a confidential chat. I assured him if there was any object in doing
so, we could move camp right to or over the county line, and frankly asked
him what inducement he would offer. At first he thought that throwing off
everything over a hundred dollars would be about right. But I assured him
that there were whole families of inspectors in Lasalle County who would
discount that figure, and kindly advised him, if he really wanted the fee,
to meet competition at least. We discussed the matter at length, and
before returning to camp, he offered to make out the certificate, covering
everything, for fifty dollars. As it was certain to be several days yet
before we would start, and there was a prospect of a falling market in
certificates of inspection, I would make no definite promises. The next
morning I insisted that he remain at some near-by ranch in his own
territory, and, if convenient, ride down every few days and note the
progress of the herd.</p>
<p>We were promised a large contingent of cattle for that day. The ranch
outfit were to make three rodeos down the river the day before, where the
bulk of their beeves ranged. Flood was anxious to overtake the other
outfits before they reached the lower country, and as he assured me I had
no further use for him, we agreed that after receiving that morning he
might leave us. Giving orders at camp to graze the received beeves within
a mile of the corrals by noon, and the wagon to follow, we made an early
start, Flood taking his own horses with him. We met the cattle coming up
the river a thousand strong. It was late when the last round-up of the day
before had finished, and they had camped for the night fully five miles
from the corrals. It took less than an hour to cull back and count, excuse
the ranch outfit, and start this contingent for the branding-pens in
charge of my boys. Flood was in a hurry, and riding a short distance with
him, I asked that he pass or send word to the county seat, informing the
inspector of hides and animals that a trail herd would leave Los Lobos
within a week. Jim knew my motive in getting competition on the
inspection, and wishing me luck on my trip, I wrung his hand in farewell
until we should meet again in the upper country.</p>
<p>The sun was setting that night when we finished road-branding the last of
the beeves received in the morning. After dinner, when the wagon returned
to camp, I instructed Parent to move up the river fully a mile. We needed
the change, anyhow, and even if it was farther, the next morning we would
have the Los Lobos outfit to assist in the branding, as that day would
finish their gathering. The outside cattle were beginning to report in
small bunches, from three hundred upward. Knowing that Dr. Beaver was
anxious to turn in as many as possible of his own, we delayed receiving
from the neighboring ranches for another day. But the next morning, as we
were ironing-up the last contingent of some four hundred Los Lobos beeves,
a deputy inspector for Lasalle arrived from the county seat. He was
likewise officious, and professed disappointment that the herd was not
ready to pass upon. On his arrival, I was handling the irons, and paid no
attention to him until the branding was over for the morning. When he
introduced himself, I cordially greeted him, but at the first intimation
of disappointment from his lips, I checked him.</p>
<p>Using the best diplomacy at my command, I said, "Well, I'm sorry to cause
you this long ride when it might have been avoided. You see, we are
receiving cattle from both this and Dimmit County. In fact, we are holding
our herd across the line just at present. On starting, we expect to go up
the river to the first creek, and north on it to the Leona River. I have
partially promised the work to an inspector from Dimmit. He inspected our
herd last year, and being a personal friend that way, you couldn't meet
his figures. Very sorry to disappoint you, but won't you come over to the
wagon and stay all night?"</p>
<p>But Dr. Beaver, who understood my motive, claimed the privilege of
entertaining the deputy at Los Lobos, and I yielded. We now had a few over
twenty-four hundred beeves, of which nineteen hundred were in the Los
Lobos brand, the others being mixed. There was a possibility of fully a
hundred more coming in with the neighboring cattle, and Dr. Beaver was
delighted over the ranch delivery. The outside contingents were in four
bunches, then encamped in different directions and within from three to
five miles of the ranch. Taking Vick Wolf with me for the afternoon, I
looked over the separate herds and found them numbering more than fifteen
hundred. They were the same uniform Nueces Valley cattle, and as we lacked
only a few over a thousand, the offerings were extremely liberal. Making
arrangements with three of the four herds to receive the next day, Vick
and I reached our camp on the county line about sunset. The change was a
decided advantage; wood, water, and grass were plentiful, and not over a
mile farther from the branding-pens.</p>
<p>The next morning found us in our saddles at the usual early hour. We were
anxious to receive and brand every animal possible that day, so that with
a few hours' work the next forenoon the herd would be ready to start.
After we had passed on the first contingent of the outside cattle, and as
we were nearing the corrals, Dr. Beaver overtook us. Calling me aside, he
said: "Quirk, if you play your cards right, you'll get a certificate of
inspection for nothing and a chromo as a pelon. I've bolstered up the
Lasalle man that he's better entitled to the work than the Dimmit
inspector, and he'll wait until the herd is ready to start. Now, you
handle the one, and I'll keep the other as my guest. We must keep them
apart and let them buck each other to their hearts' content. Every hoof in
your herd will be in a ranch brand of record; but still the law demands
inspection and you must comply with it. I'll give you a duplicate list of
the brands, so that neither inspector need see the herd, and if we don't
save your employer a hundred dollars, then we are amateurs."</p>
<p>Everything was pointing to an auspicious start. The last cattle on the
delivery were equal to the first, if not better. The sky clouded over, and
before noon a light shower fell, settling the dust in the corrals. Help
increased as the various bunches were accepted, and at the end of the day
only a few over two hundred remained to complete our numbers. The last
contingent were fully up to the standard; and rather than disappoint the
sellers, I accepted fifty head extra, making my herd at starting
thirty-four hundred and fifty. When the last beef had passed the
branding-chute, there was nothing remaining but to give a receipt to the
seller for the number of head received, in behalf of my employer, pending
a later settlement between them.</p>
<p>Meanwhile competition in the matter of inspection had been carefully
nursed. Conscious of each other's presence, and both equally anxious for
the fee, the one deputy was entertained at my camp and the other at Los
Lobos. They were treated courteously, but given to understand that in the
present instance money talked. With but a small bunch of beeves to brand
on the starting day, the direction in which the herd was allowed to leave
the bed-ground would be the final answer. If west, Dimmit had underbid
Lasalle; if the contrary, then the departure of this herd would be a
matter of record in the latter county. Dr. Beaver enjoyed the situation
hugely, acting the intermediary in behalf of his guest. Personally I was
unconcerned, but was neutral and had little to say.</p>
<p>My outfit understood the situation perfectly. Before retiring on the night
of our last camp on the county line, and in the presence of the Dimmit
inspector, the last relief received instructions, in the absence of
contrary orders, to allow the herd to drift back into Lasalle in the
morning. Matters were being conducted in pantomime, and the players
understood their parts. Our guest had made himself useful in various ways,
and I naturally felt friendly towards him. He had stood several guards for
the boys, and Burl Van Vedder, of the last watch, had secret instructions
to call him for that guard.</p>
<p>The next morning the camp was not astir as early as usual. On the cook's
arousing us, in the uncertain light of dawn, the herd was slowly rising,
and from the position of a group of four horsemen, it was plainly evident
that our guest had shaded all competition. Our camp was in plain view of
Los Lobos, and only some five or six miles distant. With the rising of the
sun, and from the top of a windmill derrick, by the aid of a field-glass,
the Lasalle inspector had read his answer; and after the work in the
morning was over, and the final papers had been exchanged, Dr. Beaver
insisted that, in commiseration of his departed guest, just one more
mint-julep should be drunk standing.</p>
<p>When Don Lovell glanced over my expense account on our arrival at Abilene,
he said: "Look here, Tom, is this straight?—twenty dollars for
inspection?—the hell you say! Corrupted them, did you? Well, that's
the cheapest inspection I ever paid, with one exception. Dave Sponsilier
once got a certificate for his herd for five dollars and a few drinks. But
he paid for it a month in advance of the starting of the herd. It was
dated ahead, properly sealed, and all ready for filling in the brands and
numbers. The herd was put up within a mile of where four counties
cornered, and that inspector was a believer in the maxim of the early
bird. The office is a red-tape one, anyhow, and little harm in taking all
the advantage you can.—This item marked 'sundries' was DRY goods, I
suppose? All right, Quirk; I reckon rattlesnakes were rather rabid this
spring."</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2HCH0004" id="link2HCH0004"></SPAN></p>
<br/>
<h2> CHAPTER IV. MINGLING WITH THE EXODUS </h2>
<p>By noon the herd had grazed out five miles on its way. The boys were so
anxious to get off that on my return the camp was deserted with the
exception of the cook and the horse-wrangler, none even returning for
dinner. Before leaving I had lunched at Los Lobos with its owner, and on
reaching the wagon, Levering and I assisted the cook to harness in and
start the commissary. The general course of the Nueces River was southeast
by northwest, and as our route lay on the latter angle, the herd would
follow up the valley for the first day. Once outside the boundaries of our
camp of the past week, the grass matted the ground with its rank young
growth. As far as the eye could see, the mesas, clothed in the verdure of
spring, rolled in long swells away to the divides. Along the river and in
the first bottom, the timber and mesquite thickets were in leaf and
blossom, while on the outlying prairies the only objects which dotted this
sea of green were range cattle and an occasional band of horses.</p>
<p>The start was made on the 27th of March. By easy drives and within a week,
we crossed the "Sunset" Railway, about thirty miles to the westward of the
ranch in Medina. On reaching the divide between the Leona and Frio rivers,
we sighted our first herd of trail cattle, heading northward. We learned
that some six herds had already passed upward on the main Frio, while a
number of others were reported as having taken the east fork of that
river. The latter stream almost paralleled the line between Medina and
Uvalde counties, and as we expected some word from headquarters, we
crossed over to the east fork. When westward of and opposite the ranch,
Runt Pickett was sent in for any necessary orders that might be waiting.
By leaving us early in the evening he could reach headquarters that night
and overtake us before noon the next day. We grazed leisurely forward the
next morning, killing as much time as possible, and Pickett overtook us
before the wagon had even gone into camp for dinner. Lovell had not
stopped on his return from the west, but had left with the depot agent at
the home station a letter for the ranch. From its contents we learned that
the other two Buford herds had started from Uvalde, Sponsilier in the
lead, one on the 24th and the other the following day. Local rumors were
encouraging in regard to grass and water to the westward, and the
intimation was clear that if favorable reports continued, the two Uvalde
herds would intersect an old trail running from the head of Nueces Canon
to the Llano River. Should they follow this route there was little hope of
their coming into the main western trail before reaching the Colorado
River. Sponsilier was a daring fellow, and if there was a possible chance
to get through beyond the borders of any settlement, he was certain to
risk it.</p>
<p>The letter contained no personal advice. Years of experience in trail
matters had taught my employer that explicit orders were often harmful.
The emergencies to be met were of such a varied nature that the best
method was to trust to an outfit worming its way out of any situation
which confronted it. From the information disclosed, it was evident that
the other Buford herds were then somewhere to the northwest, and possibly
over a hundred miles distant. Thus freed from any restraint, we held a due
northward course for several days, or until we encountered some rocky
country. Water was plentiful and grass fairly good, but those flinty hills
must be avoided or sorefooted beeves would be the result. I had seen
trails of blood left by cattle from sandy countries on encountering rock,
and now the feet of ours were a second consideration to their stomachs.
But long before the herd reached this menace, Morg Tussler and myself,
scouting two full days in advance, located a safe route to the westward.
Had we turned to the other hand, we should have been forced into the main
trail below Fredericksburg, and we preferred the sea-room of the boundless
plain. From every indication and report, this promised to be the banner
year in the exodus of cattle from the South to the then new Northwest.
This latter section was affording the long-looked-for outlet, by absorbing
the offerings of cattle which came up from Texas over the trail, and
marking an epoch barely covering a single decade.</p>
<p>Turning on a western angle, a week's drive brought us out on a high
tableland. Veering again to the north, we snailed along through a
delightful country, rich in flora and the freshness of the season. From
every possible elevation, we scanned the west in the hope of sighting some
of the herd which had followed up the main Frio, but in vain. Sweeping
northward at a leisurely gait, the third week out we sighted the Blue
Mountains, the first familiar landmark on our course. As the main western
trail skirted its base on the eastward, our position was easily
established.</p>
<p>So far the cattle were well behaved, not a run, and only a single incident
occurring worth mention. About half an hour before dawn one morning, the
cook aroused the camp with the report that the herd was missing. The
beeves had been bedded within two hundred yards of the wagon, and the last
watch usually hailed the rekindling of the cook's fire as the first
harbinger of day. But on this occasion the absence of the usual
salutations from the bed-ground aroused Parent's suspicion. He rushed into
camp, and laboring under the impression that the cattle had stampeded,
trampled over our beds, yelling at the top of his lungs. Aroused in the
darkness from heavy sleep, bewildered by a bright fire burning and a crazy
man shouting, "The beeves have stampeded! the herd's gone! Get up,
everybody!" we were almost thrown into a panic. Many of the boys ran for
their night-horses, but Clay Zilligan and I fell on the cook and shook the
statement out of him that the cattle had left their beds. This simplified
the situation, but before I could recall the men, several of them had
reached the bed-ground. As fast as horses could be secured, others dashed
through the lighted circle and faded into the darkness. From the
flickering of matches it was evident that the boys were dismounting and
looking for some sign of trouble. Zilligan was swearing like a pirate,
looking for his horse in the murky night; but instead of any alarm, oaths
and derision greeted our ears as the men returned to camp. Halting their
horses within the circle of the fire, Dorg Seay said to the cook:</p>
<p>"Neal, the next time you find a mare's nest, keep the secret to yourself.
I don't begrudge losing thirty minutes' beauty sleep, but I hate to be
scared out of a year's growth. Haven't you got cow-sense enough to know
that if those beeves had run, they'd have shook the earth? If they had
stampeded, that alarm clock of yours wouldn't be a circumstance to the
barking of the boys' guns. Why, the cattle haven't been gone thirty
minutes. You can see where they got up and then quietly walked away. The
ground where they lay is still steaming and warm. They were watered a
little too soon yesterday and naturally got up early this morning. The
boys on guard didn't want to alarm the outfit, and just allowed the beeves
to graze off on their course. When day breaks, you'll see they ain't far
away, and in the right direction. Parent, if I didn't sabe cows better
than you do, I'd confine my attention to a cotton patch."</p>
<p>Seay had read the sign aright. When day dawned the cattle were in plain
view about a mile distant. On the return of the last guard to camp, Vick
Wolf explained the situation in a few words. During their watch the herd
had grown restless, many of the cattle arising; and knowing that dawn was
near at hand, the boys had pushed the sleepy ones off their beds and
started them feeding. The incident had little effect on the irrepressible
Parent, who seemed born to blunder, yet gifted with a sunny disposition
which atoned for his numerous mistakes.</p>
<p>With the Blue Mountains as our guiding star, we kept to the westward of
that landmark, crossing the Llano River opposite some Indian mounds. On
reaching the divide between this and the next water, we sighted two
dust-clouds to the westward. They were ten to fifteen miles distant, but I
was anxious to hear any word of Sponsilier or Forrest, and sent Jake Blair
to make a social call. He did not return until the next day, and reported
the first herd as from the mouth of the Pecos, and the more distant one as
belonging to Jesse Presnall. Blair had stayed all night with the latter,
and while its foreman was able to locate at least a dozen trail herds in
close proximity, our two from Uvalde had neither been seen nor heard of.
Baffled again, necessity compelled us to turn within touch of some
outfitting point. The staples of life were running low in our commissary,
no opportunity having presented itself to obtain a new supply since we
left the ranch in Medina over a month before. Consequently, after crossing
the San Saba, we made our first tack to the eastward.</p>
<p>Brady City was an outfitting point for herds on the old western trail. On
coming opposite that frontier village, Parent and I took the wagon and
went in after supplies, leaving the herd on its course, paralleling the
former route. They had instructions to camp on Brady Creek that night. On
reaching the supply point, there was a question if we could secure the
simple staples needed. The drive that year had outstripped all
calculations, some half-dozen chuck-wagons being in waiting for the
arrival of a freight outfit which was due that morning. The nearest
railroad was nearly a hundred miles to the eastward, and all supplies must
be freighted in by mule and ox teams. While waiting for the freight
wagons, which were in sight several miles distant, I made inquiry of the
two outfitting stores if our Buford herds had passed. If they had, no
dealings had taken place on the credit of Don Lovell, though both
merchants knew him well. Before the freight outfit arrived, some one took
Abb Blocker, a trail foreman for his brother John, to task for having an
odd ox in his wheel team. The animal was a raw, unbroken "7L" bull, surly
and chafing under the yoke, and attracted general attention. When several
friends of Blocker, noticing the brand, began joking him, he made this
explanation: "No, I don't claim him; but he came into my herd the other
night and got to hossing my steers around. We couldn't keep him out, and I
thought if he would just go along, why we'd put him under the yoke and let
him hoss that chuck-wagon to amuse himself. One of my wheelers was getting
a little tenderfooted, anyhow."</p>
<p>On the arrival of the freight outfit, short shift was made in transferring
a portion of the cargo to the waiting chuck-wagons. As we expected to
reach Abilene, a railroad point, within a week, we took on only a small
stock of staple supplies. Having helped ourselves, the only delay was in
getting a clerk to look over our appropriation, make out an itemized bill,
and receive a draft on my employer. When finally the merchant in person
climbed into our wagon and took a list of the articles, Parent started
back to overtake the herd. I remained behind several hours, chatting with
the other foremen.</p>
<p>None of the other trail bosses had seen anything of Lovell's other herds,
though they all knew him personally or by reputation, and inquired if he
was driving again in the same road brand. By general agreement, in case of
trouble, we would pick up each other's cattle; and from half a cent to a
cent a head was considered ample remuneration in buying water in Texas.
Owing to the fact that many drovers had shipped to Red River, it was
generally believed that there would be no congestion of cattle south of
that point. All herds were then keeping well to the westward, some even
declaring their intention to go through the Panhandle until the Canadian
was reached.</p>
<p>Two days later we came into the main trail at the crossing of the Colorado
River. Before we reached it, several ominous dust-clouds hung on our right
for hours, while beyond the river were others, indicating the presence of
herds. Summer weather had already set in, and during the middle of the day
the glare of heat-waves and mirages obstructed our view of other wayfarers
like ourselves, but morning and evening we were never out of sight of
their signals. The banks of the river at the ford were trampled to the
level of the water, while at both approach and exit the ground was cut
into dust. On our arrival, the stage of water was favorable, and we
crossed without a halt of herd, horses, or commissary. But there was
little inducement to follow the old trail. Washed into ruts by the
seasons, the grass on either side eaten away for miles, there was a look
of desolation like that to be seen in the wake of an army. As we felt
under obligations to touch at Abilene within a few days, there was a
constant skirmish for grass within a reasonable distance of the trail; and
we were early, fully two thirds of the drive being in our rear. One sultry
morning south of Buffalo Gap, as we were grazing past the foot of Table
Mountain, several of us rode to the summit of that butte. From a single
point of observation we counted twelve herds within a space of thirty
miles both south and north, all moving in the latter direction.</p>
<p>When about midway between the Gap and the railroad we were met at noon one
day by Don Lovell. This was his first glimpse of my herd, and his
experienced eye took in everything from a broken harness to the peeling
and legibility of the road brand. With me the condition of the cattle was
the first requisite, but the minor details as well as the more important
claimed my employer's attention. When at last, after riding with the herd
for an hour, he spoke a few words of approbation on the condition, weight,
and uniformity of the beeves, I felt a load lifted from my shoulders. That
the old man was in a bad humor on meeting us was evident; but as he rode
along beside the cattle, lazy and large as oxen, the cockles of his heart
warmed and he grew sociable. Near the middle of the afternoon, as we were
in the rear, looking over the drag steers, he complimented me on having
the fewest tender-footed animals of any herd that had passed Abilene since
his arrival. Encouraged, I ventured the double question as to how this one
would average with the other Buford herds, and did he know their
whereabouts. As I recall his reply, it was that all Nueces Valley cattle
were uniform, and if there was any difference it was due to carelessness
in receiving. In regard to the locality of the other herds, it was easily
to be seen that he was provoked about something.</p>
<p>"Yes, I know where they are," said he, snappishly, "but that's all the
good it does me. They crossed the railroad, west, at Sweetwater, about a
week ago. I don't blame Quince, for he's just trailing along, half a day
behind Dave's herd. But Sponsilier, knowing that I wanted to see him, had
the nerve to write me a postal card with just ten words on it, saying that
all was well and to meet him in Dodge. Tom, you don't know what a
satisfaction it is to me to spend a day or so with each of the herds. But
those rascals didn't pay any more attention to me than if I was an old
woman. There was some reason for it—sore-footed cattle, or else they
have skinned up their remudas and didn't want me to see them. If I drive a
hundred herds hereafter, Dave Sponsilier will stay at home as far as I'm
concerned. He may think it's funny to slip past, but this court isn't
indulging in any levity just at present. I fail to see the humor in having
two outfits with sixty-seven hundred cattle somewhere between the Staked
Plain and No-Man's-Land, and unable to communicate with them. And while my
herds are all contracted, mature beeves have broke from three to five
dollars a head in price since these started, and it won't do to shout
before we're out of the woods. Those fool boys don't know that, and I
can't get near enough to tell them."</p>
<p>I knew better than to ask further questions or offer any apologies for
others. My employer was naturally irritable, and his abuse or praise of a
foreman was to be expected. Previously and under the smile of prosperity,
I had heard him laud Sponsilier, and under an imaginary shadow abuse Jim
Flood, the most experienced man in his employ. Feeling it was useless to
pour oil on the present troubled waters, I excused myself, rode back, and
ordered the wagon to make camp ahead about four miles on Elm Creek. We
watered late in the afternoon, grazing thence until time to bed the herd.
When the first and second guards were relieved to go in and catch
night-horses and get their supper, my employer remained behind with the
cattle. While feeding during the evening, we allowed the herd to scatter
over a thousand acres. Taking advantage of the loose order of the beeves,
the old man rode back and forth through them until approaching darkness
compelled us to throw them together on the bedground. Even after the first
guard took charge, the drover loitered behind, reluctant to leave until
the last steer had lain down; and all during the night, sharing my
blankets, he awoke on every change of guards, inquiring of the returning
watch how the cattle were sleeping.</p>
<p>As we should easily pass Abilene before noon, I asked him as a favor that
he take the wagon in and get us sufficient supplies to last until Red
River was reached. But he preferred to remain behind with the herd, and I
went instead. This suited me, as his presence overawed my outfit, who were
delirious to see the town. There was no telling how long he would have
stayed with us, but my brother Bob's herd was expected at any time.
Remaining with us a second night, something, possibly the placidness of
the cattle, mellowed the old man and he grew amiable with the outfit, and
myself in particular. At breakfast the next morning, when I asked him if
he was in a position to recommend any special route, he replied:</p>
<p>"No, Tom, that rests with you. One thing's certain; herds are going to be
dangerously close together on the regular trail which crosses Red River at
Doan's. The season is early yet, but over fifty herds have already crossed
the Texas Pacific Railway. Allowing one half the herds to start north of
that line, it gives you a fair idea what to expect. When seven hundred
thousand cattle left Texas two years ago, it was considered the banner
year, yet it won't be a marker to this one. The way prices are tumbling
shows that the Northwest was bluffing when they offered to mature all the
cattle that Texas could breed for the next fifty years. That's the kind of
talk that suits me, but last year there were some forty herds unsold,
which were compelled to winter in the North. Not over half the saddle
horses that came up the trail last summer were absorbed by these Northern
cowmen. Talk's cheap, but it takes money to buy whiskey. Lots of these men
are new ones at the business and may lose fortunes. The banks are getting
afraid of cattle paper, and conditions are tightening. With the increased
drive this year, if the summer passes without a slaughter in prices, the
Texas drovers can thank their lucky stars. I'm not half as bright as I
might be, but this is one year that I'm smooth enough not to have unsold
cattle on the trail."</p>
<p>The herd had started an hour before, and when the wagon was ready to move,
I rode a short distance with my employer. It was possible that he had
something to say of a confidential nature, for it was seldom that he acted
so discouraged when his every interest seemed protected by contracts. But
at the final parting, when we both had dismounted and sat on the ground
for an hour, he had disclosed nothing. On the contrary, he even admitted
that possibly it was for the best that the other Buford herds had held a
westward course and thus avoided the crush on the main routes. The only
intimation which escaped him was when we had remounted and each started
our way, he called me back and said, "Tom, no doubt but you've noticed
that I'm worried. Well, I am. I'd tell you in a minute, but I may be wrong
in the matter. But I'll know before you reach Dodge, and then, if it's
necessary, you shall know all. It's nothing about the handling of the
herds, for my foremen have always considered my interests first. Keep this
to yourself, for it may prove a nightmare. But if it should prove true,
then we must stand together. Now, that's all; mum's the word until we
meet. Drop me a line if you get a chance, and don't let my troubles worry
you."</p>
<p>While overtaking the herd, I mused over my employer's last words. But my
brain was too muddy even to attempt to solve the riddle. The most
plausible theory that I could advance was that some friendly cowmen were
playing a joke on him, and that the old man had taken things too
seriously. Within a week the matter was entirely forgotten, crowded out of
mind by the demands of the hour. The next night, on the Clear Fork of the
Brazos, a stranger, attracted by our camp-fire, rode up to the wagon.
Returning from the herd shortly after his arrival, I recognized in our
guest John Blocker, a prominent drover. He informed us that he and his
associates had fifty-two thousand cattle on the trail, and that he was
just returning from overtaking two of their five lead herds. Knowing that
he was a well-posted cowman on routes and sustenance, having grown up on
the trail, I gave him the best our camp afforded, and in return I received
valuable information in regard to the country between our present location
and Doan's Crossing. He reported the country for a hundred miles south of
Red River as having had a dry, backward spring, scanty of grass, and with
long dry drives; and further, that in many instances water for the herds
would have to be bought from those in control.</p>
<p>The outlook was not to my liking. The next morning when I inquired of our
guest what he would advise me to do, his answer clearly covered the
ground. "Well, I'm not advising any one," said he, "but you can draw your
own conclusions. The two herds of mine, which I overtook, have orders to
turn northeast and cross into the Nations at Red River Station. My other
cattle, still below, will all be routed by way of Fort Griffin. Once
across Red River, you will have the Chisholm Trail, running through
civilized tribes, and free from all annoyance of blanket Indians. South of
the river the grass is bound to be better than on the western route, and
if we have to buy water, we'll have the advantage of competition."</p>
<p>With this summary of the situation, a decision was easily reached. The
Chisholm Trail was good enough for me. Following up the north side of the
Clear Fork, we passed about twenty miles to the west of Fort Griffin.
Constantly bearing east by north, a few days later we crossed the main
Brazos at a low stage of water. But from there to Red River was a trial
not to be repeated. Wire fences halted us at every turn. Owners of
pastures refused permission to pass through. Lanes ran in the wrong
direction, and open country for pasturage was scarce. What we dreaded
most, lack of drink for the herd, was the least of our troubles, necessity
requiring its purchase only three or four times. And like a climax to a
week of sore trials, when we were in sight of Red River a sand and dust
storm struck us, blinding both men and herd for hours. The beeves fared
best, for with lowered heads they turned their backs to the howling gale,
while the horsemen caught it on every side. The cattle drifted at will in
an uncontrollable mass. The air was so filled with sifting sand and
eddying dust that it was impossible to see a mounted man at a distance of
fifty yards. The wind blew a hurricane, making it impossible to dismount
in the face of it. Our horses trembled with fear, unsteady on their feet.
The very sky overhead darkened as if night was falling. Two thirds of the
men threw themselves in the lead of the beeves, firing six-shooters to
check them, which could not even be heard by the ones on the flank and in
the rear. Once the herd drifted against a wire fence, leveled it down and
moved on, sullen but irresistible. Towards evening the storm abated, and
half the outfit was sent out in search of the wagon, which was finally
found about dark some four miles distant.</p>
<p>That night Owen Ubery, as he bathed his bloodshot eyes in a pail of water,
said to the rest of us: "Fellows, if ever I have a boy, and tell him how
his pa suffered this afternoon, and he don't cry, I'll cut a switch and
whip him until he does."</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2HCH0005" id="link2HCH0005"></SPAN></p>
<br/>
<h2> CHAPTER V. RED RIVER STATION </h2>
<p>When the spirit of a man is once broken, he becomes useless. On the trail
it is necessary to have some diversion from hard work, long hours, and
exposure to the elements. With man and beast, from the Brazos to Red River
was a fire test of physical endurance. But after crossing into the
Chickasaw Nation, a comparatively new country would open before us. When
the strain of the past week was sorest, in buoying up the spirits of my
outfit, I had promised them rest and recreation at the first possible
opportunity.</p>
<p>Fortunately we had an easy ford. There was not even an indication that
there had been a freshet on the river that spring. This was tempering the
wind, for we were crippled, three of the boys being unable to resume their
places around the herd on account of inflamed eyes. The cook had weathered
the sand-storm better than any of us. Sheltering his team, and fastening
his wagon-sheet securely, he took refuge under it until the gale had
passed. Pressing him into the service the next morning, and assigning him
to the drag end of the herd, I left the blind to lead the blind in driving
the wagon. On reaching the river about the middle of the forenoon, we
trailed the cattle across in a long chain, not an animal being compelled
to swim. The wagon was carried over on a ferryboat, as it was heavily
loaded, a six weeks' supply of provisions having been taken on before
crossing. Once the trail left the breaks, on the north side of the river,
we drew off several miles to the left and went into camp for the remainder
of the day. Still keeping clear of the trail, daily we moved forward the
wagon from three to five miles, allowing the cattle to graze and rest to
contentment. The herd recuperated rapidly, and by the evening of the
fourth day after crossing, the inflammation was so reduced in those whose
eyes were inflamed, that we decided to start in earnest the next morning.</p>
<p>The cook was ordered to set out the best the wagon afforded, several
outside delicacies were added, and a feast was in sight. G—G
Cederdall had recrossed the river that day to mail a letter, and on his
return proudly carried a basket of eggs on his arm. Three of the others
had joined a fishing party from the Texas side, and had come in earlier in
the day with a fine string of fish. Parent won new laurels in the supper
to which he invited us about sundown. The cattle came in to their beds
groaning and satiated, and dropped down as if ordered. When the first
watch had taken them, there was nothing to do but sit around and tell
stories. Since crossing Red River, we had slept almost night and day, but
in that balmy May evening sleep was banished. The fact that we were in the
Indian country, civilized though the Indians were, called forth many an
incident. The raids of the Comanches into the Panhandle country during the
buffalo days was a favorite topic. Vick Wolf, however, had had an Indian
experience in the North with which he regaled us at the first opportunity.</p>
<p>"There isn't any trouble nowadays," said he, lighting a cigarette, "with
these blanket Indians on the reservations. I had an experience once on a
reservation where the Indians could have got me easy enough if they had
been on the war-path. It was the first winter I ever spent on a Northern
range, having gone up to the Cherokee Strip to avoid—well, no
matter. I got a job in the Strip, not riding, but as a kind of an
all-round rustler. This was long before the country was fenced, and they
rode lines to keep the cattle on their ranges. One evening about nightfall
in December, the worst kind of a blizzard struck us that the country had
ever seen. The next day it was just as bad, and BLOODY cold. A fellow
could not see any distance, and to venture away from the dugout meant to
get lost. The third day she broke and the sun came out clear in the early
evening. The next day we managed to gather the saddle horses, as they had
not drifted like the cattle.</p>
<p>"Well, we were three days overtaking the lead of that cattle drift, and
then found them in the heart of the Cheyenne country, at least on that
reservation. They had drifted a good hundred miles before the storm broke.
Every outfit in the Strip had gone south after their cattle. Instead of
drifting them back together, the different ranches rustled for their own.
Some of the foremen paid the Indians so much per head to gather for them,
but ours didn't. The braves weren't very much struck on us on that
account. I was cooking for the outfit, which suited me in winter weather.
We had a permanent camp on a small well-wooded creek, from which we worked
all the country round.</p>
<p>"One afternoon when I was in camp all alone, I noticed an Indian
approaching me from out of the timber. There was a Winchester standing
against the wagon wheel, but as the bucks were making no trouble, I gave
the matter no attention. Mr. Injun came up to the fire and professed to be
very friendly, shook hands, and spoke quite a number of words in English.
After he got good and warm, he looked all over the wagon, and noticing
that I had no sixshooter on, he picked up the carbine and walked out about
a hundred yards to a little knoll, threw his arms in the air, and made
signs.</p>
<p>"Instantly, out of the cover of some timber on the creek a quarter above,
came about twenty young bucks, mounted, and yelling like demons. When they
came up, they began circling around the fire and wagon. I was sitting on
an empty corn-crate by the fire. One young buck, seeing that I was not
scaring to suit him, unslung a carbine as he rode, and shot into the fire
before me. The bullet threw fire and ashes all over me, and I jumped about
ten feet, which suited them better. They circled around for several
minutes, every one uncovering a carbine, and they must have fired a
hundred and fifty shots into the fire. In fact they almost shot it out,
scattering the fire around so that it came near burning up the bedding of
our outfit. I was scared thoroughly by this time. If it was possible for
me to have had fits, I'd have had one sure. The air seemed full of coals
of fire and ashes. I got good practical insight into what hell's like. I
was rustling the rolls of bedding out of the circle of fire, expecting
every moment would be my last. It's a wonder I wasn't killed. Were they
throwing lead? Well, I should remark! You see the ground was not frozen
around the fire, and the bullets buried themselves in the soft soil.</p>
<p>"After they had had as much fun as they wanted, the leader gave a yell and
they all circled the other way once, and struck back into the timber. Some
of them had brought up the decoy Indian's horse when they made the dash at
first, and he suddenly turned as wild as a Cheyenne generally gets. When
the others were several hundred yards away, he turned his horse, rode back
some little distance, and attracted my attention by holding out the
Winchester. From his horse he laid it carefully down on the ground,
whirled his pony, and rode like a scared wolf after the others. I could
hear their yells for miles, as they made for their encampment over on the
North Fork. As soon as I got the fire under control, I went out and got
the carbine. It was empty; the Indian had used its magazine in the general
hilarity. That may be an Indian's style of fun, but I failed to see where
there was any in it for me."</p>
<p>The cook threw a handful of oily fish-bones on the fire, causing it to
flame up for a brief moment. With the exception of Wayne Outcault, who was
lying prone on the ground, the men were smoking and sitting Indian fashion
around the fire. After rolling awhile uneasily, Outcault sat up and
remarked, "I feel about half sick. Eat too much? Don't you think it. Why,
I only ate seven or eight of those fish, and that oughtn't to hurt a baby.
There was only half a dozen hard-boiled eggs to the man, and I don't
remember of any of you being so generous as to share yours with me. Those
few plates of prunes that I ate for dessert wouldn't hurt nobody—they're
medicine to some folks. Unroll our bed, pardner, and I'll thrash around on
it awhile."</p>
<p>Several trail stories of more or less interest were told, when Runt
Pickett, in order to avoid the smoke, came over and sat down between Burl
Van Vedder and me. He had had an experience, and instantly opened on us at
short range. "Speaking of stampedes," said Runt, "reminds me of a run I
was in, and over which I was paid by my employer a very high compliment.
My first trip over the trail, as far north as Dodge, was in '78. The herd
sold next day after reaching there, and as I had an old uncle and aunt
living in middle Kansas, I concluded to run down and pay them a short
visit. So I threw away all my trail togs—well, they were worn out,
anyway—and bought me a new outfit complete. Yes, I even bought
button shoes. After visiting a couple of weeks with my folks, I drifted
back to Dodge in the hope of getting in with some herd bound farther north—I
was perfectly useless on a farm. On my return to Dodge, the only thing
about me that indicated a cow-hand was my Texas saddle and outfit, but in
toggery, in my visiting harness, I looked like a rank tenderfoot.</p>
<p>"Well, boys, the first day I struck town I met a through man looking for
hands. His herd had just come in over the Chisholm Trail, crossing to the
western somewhere above. He was disgusted with his outfit, and was
discharging men right and left and hiring new ones to take their places. I
apologized for my appearance, showed him my outfit, and got a job
cow-punching with this through man. He expected to hold on sale a week or
two, when if unsold he would drift north to the Platte. The first week
that I worked, a wet stormy night struck us, and before ten o'clock we
lost every hoof of cattle. I was riding wild after little squads of cattle
here and there, guided by flashes of lightning, when the storm finally
broke. Well, there it was midnight, and I didn't have a HOOF OF CATTLE to
hold and no one to help me if I had. The truth is, I was lost. Common
horse-sense told me that; but where the outfit or wagon was was anybody's
guess. The horses in my mount were as good as worthless; worn out, and if
you gave one free rein he lacked the energy to carry you back to camp. I
ploughed around in the darkness for over an hour, but finally came to a
sudden stop on the banks of the muddy Arkansaw. Right there I held a
council of war with myself, the decision of which was that it was at least
five miles to the wagon.</p>
<p>"After I'd prowled around some little time, a bright flash of lightning
revealed to me an old deserted cabin a few rods below. To this shelter I
turned without even a bid, unsaddled my horse and picketed him, and turned
into the cabin for the night. Early the next morning I was out and saddled
my horse, and the question was, Which way is camp? As soon as the sun rose
clearly, I got my bearings. By my reasoning, if the river yesterday was
south of camp, this morning the wagon must be north of the river, so I
headed in that direction. Somehow or other I stopped my horse on the first
little knoll, and looking back towards the bottom, I saw in a horseshoe
which the river made a large bunch of cattle. Of course I knew that all
herds near about were through cattle and under herd, and the absence of
any men in sight aroused my curiosity. I concluded to investigate it, and
riding back found over five hundred head of the cattle we had lost the
night before. 'Here's a chance to make a record with my new boss,' I said
to myself, and circling in behind, began drifting them out of the bottoms
towards the uplands. By ten o'clock I had got them to the first divide,
when who should ride up but the owner, the old cowman himself—the
sure enough big auger.</p>
<p>"'Well, son,' said my boss, 'you held some of them, didn't you?' 'Yes,' I
replied, surly as I could, giving him a mean look, 'I've nearly ridden
this horse to death, holding this bunch all night. If I had only had a
good man or two with me, we could have caught twice as many. What kind of
an outfit are you working, anyhow, Captain?' And at dinner that day, the
boss pointed me out to the others and said, 'That little fellow standing
over there with the button shoes on is the only man in my outfit that is
worth a ————.'"</p>
<p>The cook had finished his work, and now joined the circle. Parent began
regaling us with personal experiences, in which it was evident that he
would prove the hero. Fortunately, however, we were spared listening to
his self-laudation. Dorg Seay and Tim Stanley, bunkies, engaged in a
friendly scuffle, each trying to make the other get a firebrand for his
pipe. In the tussle which followed, we were all compelled to give way or
get trampled underfoot. When both had exhausted themselves in vain, we
resumed our places around the fire. Parent, who was disgusted over the
interruption, on resuming his seat refused to continue his story at the
request of the offenders, replying, "The more I see of you two varmints
the more you remind me of mule colts."</p>
<p>Once the cook refused to pick up the broken thread of his story, John
Levering, our horse-wrangler, preempted the vacated post. "I was over in
Louisiana a few winters ago with a horse herd," said John, "and had a few
experiences. Of all the simple people that I ever met, the 'Cajin' takes
the bakery. You'll meet darkies over there that can't speak a word of
anything but French. It's nothing to see a cow and mule harnessed together
to a cart. One day on the road, I met a man, old enough to be my father,
and inquired of him how far it was to the parish centre, a large town. He
didn't know, except it was a long, long ways. He had never been there, but
his older brother, once when he was a young man, had been there as a
witness at court. The brother was dead now, but if he was living and
present, it was quite possible that he would remember the distance. The
best information was that it was a very long ways off. I rode it in the
mud in less than two hours; just about ten miles.</p>
<p>"But that wasn't a circumstance to other experiences. We had driven about
three hundred horses and mules, and after disposing of over two thirds of
them, my employer was compelled to return home, leaving me to dispose of
the remainder. I was a fair salesman, and rather than carry the remnant of
the herd with me, made headquarters with a man who owned a large
cane-brake pasture. It was a convenient stopping-place, and the stock did
well on the young cane. Every week I would drive to some distant town
eighteen or twenty head, or as many as I could handle alone. Sometimes I
would sell out in a few days, and then again it would take me longer. But
when possible I always made it a rule to get back to my headquarters to
spend Sunday. The owner of the cane-brake and his wife were a simple
couple, and just a shade or two above the Arcadians. But they had a
daughter who could pass muster, and she took quite a shine to the
'Texas-Hoss-Man,' as they called me. I reckon you understand now why I
made that headquarters?—there were other reasons besides the good
pasturage.</p>
<p>"Well, the girl and her mother both could read, but I have some doubt
about the old man on that score. They took no papers, and the nearest
approach to a book in the house was an almanac three years old. The women
folks were ravenous for something to read, and each time on my return
after selling out, I'd bring them a whole bundle of illustrated papers and
magazines. About my fourth return after more horses,—I was mighty
near one of the family by that time,—when we were all seated around
the fire one night, the women poring over the papers and admiring the
pictures, the old man inquired what the news was over in the parish where
I had recently been. The only thing that I could remember was the suicide
of a prominent man. After explaining the circumstances, I went on to say
that some little bitterness arose over his burial. Owing to his prominence
it was thought permission would be given to bury him in the churchyard.
But it seems there was some superstition about permitting a self-murderer
to be buried in the same field as decent folks. It was none of my funeral,
and I didn't pay overmuch attention to the matter, but the authorities
refused, and they buried him just outside the grounds, in the woods.</p>
<p>"My host and I discussed the matter at some length. He contended that if
the man was not of sound mind, he should have been given his little six
feet of earth among the others. A horse salesman has to be a good
second-rate talker, and being anxious to show off before the girl, I
differed with her father. The argument grew spirited yet friendly, and I
appealed to the women in supporting my view. My hostess was absorbed at
the time in reading a sensational account of a woman shooting her
betrayer. The illustrations covered a whole page, and the girl was simply
burning, at short range, the shirt from off her seducer. The old lady was
bogged to the saddle skirts in the story, when I interrupted her and
inquired, 'Mother, what do you think ought to be done with a man who
commits suicide?' She lowered the paper just for an instant, and looking
over her spectacles at me replied, 'Well, I think any man who would do
THAT ought to be made to support the child.'"</p>
<p>No comment was offered. Our wrangler arose and strolled away from the fire
under the pretense of repicketing his horse. It was nearly time for the
guards to change, and giving the last watch orders to point the herd, as
they left the bed-ground in the morning, back on an angle towards the
trail, I prepared to turn in. While I was pulling off my boots in the act
of retiring, Clay Zilligan rode in from the herd to call the relief. The
second guard were bridling their horses, and as Zilligan dismounted, he
said to the circle of listeners, "Didn't I tell you fellows that there was
another herd just ahead of us? I don't care if they didn't pass up the
trail since we've been laying over, they are there just the same. Of
course you can't see their camp-fire from here, but it's in plain view
from the bed-ground, and not over four or five miles away. If I remember
rightly, there's a local trail comes in from the south of the Wichita
River, and joins the Chisholm just ahead. And what's more, that herd was
there at nine o'clock this morning, and they haven't moved a peg since.
Well, there's two lads out there waiting to be relieved, and you second
guard know where the cattle are bedded."</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2HCH0006" id="link2HCH0006"></SPAN></p>
<br/>
<h2> CHAPTER VI. CAMP SUPPLY </h2>
<p>In gala spirits we broke camp the next morning. The herd had left the
bed-ground at dawn, and as the outfit rode away to relieve the last guard,
every mother's son was singing. The cattle were a refreshing sight as they
grazed forward, their ragged front covering half a mile in width. The rest
of the past few days had been a boon to the few tender-footed ones. The
lay-over had rejuvenated both man and beast. From maps in our possession
we knew we were somewhere near the western border of the Chickasaw Nation,
while on our left was the reservation of three blanket tribes of Indians.
But as far as signs of occupancy were concerned, the country was unmarked
by any evidence of civilization. The Chisholm Cattle Trail, which ran from
Red River to the Kansas line, had almost fallen into disuse, owing to
encroachments of settlements south of the former and westward on the
latter. With the advancement of immigration, Abilene and Ellsworth as
trail terminals yielded to the tide, and the leading cattle trace of the
'70's was relegated to local use in '84.</p>
<p>The first guard was on the qui vive for the outfit whose camp-fire they
had sighted the night before. I was riding with Clay Zilligan on the left
point, when he sighted what we supposed was a small bunch of cattle lying
down several miles distant. When we reached the first rise of ground, a
band of saddle horses came in view, and while we were trying to locate
their camp, Jack Splann from the opposite point attracted our attention
and pointed straight ahead. There a large band of cattle under herd
greeted our view, compelling us to veer to the right and intersect the
trail sooner than we intended. Keeping a clear half-mile between us, we
passed them within an hour and exchanged the compliments of the trail.
They proved to be "Laurel Leaf" and "Running W" cattle, the very ones for
which the International Railway agent at the meeting in February had so
boastfully shown my employer the application for cars. The foreman was
cursing like a stranded pirate over the predicament in which he found
himself. He had left Santo Gertrudo Ranch over a month before with a herd
of three thousand straight two-year-old steers. But in the shipment of
some thirty-three thousand cattle from the two ranches to Wichita Falls,
six trains had been wrecked, two of which were his own. Instead of being
hundreds of miles ahead in the lead of the year's drive, as he expected,
he now found himself in charge of a camp of cripples. What few trains
belonging to his herd had escaped the ditch were used in filling up other
unfortunate ones, the injured cattle from the other wrecks forming his
present holdings.</p>
<p>"Our people were anxious to get their cattle on to the market early this
year," said he, "and put their foot into it up to the knee. Shipping to
Red River was an experiment with them, and I hope they've got their belly
full. We've got dead and dying cattle in every pasture from the falls to
the river, while these in sight aren't able to keep out of the stench of
those that croaked between here and the ford. Oh, this shipping is a fine
thing—for the railroads. Here I've got to rot all summer with these
cattle, just because two of my trains went into the ditch while no other
foreman had over one wrecked. And mind you, they paid the freight in
advance, and now King and Kennedy have brought suit for damages amounting
to double the shipping expense. They'll get it all right—in pork.
I'd rather have a claim against a nigger than a railroad company. Look at
your beeves, slick as weasels, and from the Nueces River. Have to hold
them in, I reckon, to keep from making twenty miles a day. And here I am—Oh,
hell, I'd rather be on a rock-pile with a ball and chain to my foot! Do
you see those objects across yonder about two miles—in that old
grass? That's where we bedded night before last and forty odd died. We
only lost twenty-two last night. Oh, we're getting in shape fast. If you
think you can hold your breakfast down, just take a ride through mine. No,
excuse me—I've seen them too often already."</p>
<p>Several of the boys and myself rode into the herd some little distance,
but the sight was enough to turn a copper-lined stomach. Scarcely an
animal had escaped without more or less injury. Fully one half were minus
one or both horns, leaving instead bloody stumps. Broken bones and open
sores greeted us on every hand; myriads of flies added to the misery of
the cattle, while in many instances there was evidence of maggots at work
on the living animal. Turning from the herd in disgust, we went back to
our own, thankful that the rate offered us had been prohibitory. The
trials and vexations of the road were mere nothings to be endured,
compared to the sights we were then leaving. Even what we first supposed
were cattle lying down, were only bed-grounds, the occupants having been
humanely relieved by unwaking sleep. Powerless to render any assistance,
we trailed away, glad to blot from our sight and memory such scenes of
misery and death.</p>
<p>Until reaching the Washita River, we passed through a delightful country.
There were numerous local trails coming into the main one, all of which
showed recent use. Abandoned camp-fires and bed-grounds were to be seen on
every hand, silent witnesses of an exodus which was to mark the maximum
year in the history of the cattle movement from Texas. Several times we
saw some evidence of settlement by the natives, but as to the freedom of
the country, we were monarchs of all we surveyed. On arriving at the
Washita, we encountered a number of herds, laboring under the impression
that they were water-bound. Immediate entrance at the ford was held by a
large herd of young cattle in charge of a negro outfit. Their stock were
scattered over several thousand acres, and when I asked for the boss, a
middle-aged darky of herculean figure was pointed out as in charge. To my
inquiry why he was holding the ford, his answer was that until to-day the
river had been swimming, and now he was waiting for the banks to dry.
Ridiculing his flimsy excuse, I kindly yet firmly asked him either to
cross or vacate the ford by three o'clock that afternoon. Receiving no
definite reply, I returned to our herd, which was some five miles in the
rear. Beyond the river's steep, slippery banks and cold water, there was
nothing to check a herd.</p>
<p>After the noonday halt, the wrangler and myself took our remuda and went
on ahead to the river. Crossing and recrossing our saddle stock a number
of times, we trampled the banks down to a firm footing. While we were
doing this work, the negro foreman and a number of his men rode up and
sullenly watched us. Leaving our horses on the north bank, Levering and I
returned, and ignoring the presence of the darky spectators, started back
to meet the herd, which was just then looming up in sight. But before we
had ridden any distance, the dusky foreman overtook us and politely said,
"Look-ee here, Cap'n; ain't you-all afraid of losin' some of your cattle
among ours?" Never halting, I replied, "Not a particle; if we lose any,
you eat them, and we'll do the same if our herd absorbs any of yours. But
it strikes me that you had better have those lazy niggers throw your
cattle to one side," I called back, as he halted his horse. We did not
look backward until we reached the herd; then as we turned, one on each
side to support the points, it was evident that a clear field would await
us on reaching the river. Every horseman in the black outfit was pushing
cattle with might and main, to give us a clean cloth at the crossing.</p>
<p>The herd forded the Washita without incident. I remained on the south bank
while the cattle were crossing, and when they were about half over some
half-dozen of the darkies rode up and stopped apart, conversing among
themselves. When the drag cattle passed safely out on the farther bank, I
turned to the dusky group, only to find their foreman absent. Making a few
inquiries as to the ownership of their herd, its destination, and other
matters of interest, I asked the group to express my thanks to their
foreman for moving his cattle aside. Our commissary crossed shortly
afterward, and the Washita was in our rear. But that night, as some of my
outfit returned from the river, where they had been fishing, they reported
the negro outfit as having crossed and encamped several miles in our rear.</p>
<p>"All they needed was a good example," said Dorg Seay. "Under a white
foreman, I'll bet that's a good lot of darkies. They were just about the
right shade—old shiny black. As good cowhands as ever I saw were
nigs, but they need a white man to blow and brag on them. But it always
ruins one to give him any authority."</p>
<p>Without effort we traveled fifteen miles a day. In the absence of any wet
weather to gall their backs, there was not a horse in our remuda unfit for
the saddle. In fact, after reaching the Indian Territory, they took on
flesh and played like lambs. With the exception of long hours and
night-herding, the days passed in seeming indolence as we swept northward,
crossing rivers without a halt which in previous years had defied the
moving herds. On arriving at the Cimarron River, in reply to a letter
written to my employer on leaving Texas behind us, an answer was found
awaiting me at Red Fork. The latter was an Indian trading-post, located on
the mail route to Fort Reno, and only a few miles north of the Chisholm
Crossing. The letter was characteristic of my employer. It contained but
one imperative order,—that I should touch, either with or without
the herd, at Camp Supply. For some unexplained reason he would make that
post his headquarters until after the Buford herds had passed that point.
The letter concluded with the injunction, in case we met any one, to
conceal the ownership of the herd and its destination.</p>
<p>The mystery was thickening. But having previously declined to borrow
trouble, I brushed this aside as unimportant, though I gave my outfit
instructions to report the herd to every one as belonging to Omaha men,
and on its way to Nebraska to be corn-fed. Fortunately I had ridden ahead
of the herd after crossing the Cimarron, and had posted the outfit before
they reached the trading-station. I did not allow one of my boys near the
store, and the herd passed by as in contempt of such a wayside place. As
the Dodge cut-off left the Chisholm Trail some ten miles above the Indian
trading-post, the next morning we waved good-bye to the old cattle trace
and turned on a northwest angle. Our route now lay up the Cimarron, which
we crossed and recrossed at our pleasure, for the sake of grazing or to
avoid several large alkali flats. There was evidence of herds in our
advance, and had we not hurried past Red Fork, I might have learned
something to our advantage. But disdaining all inquiry of the cut-off,
fearful lest our identity be discovered, we deliberately walked into the
first real danger of the trip.</p>
<p>At low water the Cimarron was a brackish stream. But numerous tributaries
put in from either side, and by keeping above the river's ebb, an
abundance of fresh water was daily secured from the river's affluents. The
fifth day out from Red Rock was an excessively sultry one, and suffering
would have resulted to the herd had we not been following a divide where
we caught an occasional breeze. The river lay some ten miles to our right,
while before us a tributary could be distinctly outlined by the
cottonwoods which grew along it. Since early morning we had been
paralleling the creek, having nooned within sight of its confluence with
the mother stream, and consequently I had considered it unnecessary to
ride ahead and look up the water. When possible, we always preferred
watering the herd between three and four o'clock in the afternoon. But by
holding our course, we were certain to intersect the creek at about the
usual hour for the cattle's daily drink, and besides, as the creek neared
the river, it ran through an alkali flat for some distance. But before the
time arrived to intersect the creek on our course, the herd turned out of
the trail, determined to go to the creek and quench their thirst. The
entire outfit, however, massed on the right flank, and against their will
we held them on their course. As their thirst increased with travel, they
made repeated attempts to break through our cordon, requiring every man to
keep on the alert. But we held them true to the divide, and as we came to
the brow of a small hill within a quarter-mile of the water, a stench
struck us until we turned in our saddles, gasping for breath. I was riding
third man in the swing from the point, and noticing something wrong in
front, galloped to the brow of the hill. The smell was sickening and
almost unendurable, and there before us in plain view lay hundreds of dead
cattle, bloated and decaying in the summer sun.</p>
<p>I was dazed by the awful scene. A pretty, greenswarded little valley lay
before me, groups of cottonwoods fringed the stream here and there, around
the roots of which were both shade and water. The reeking stench that
filled the air stupefied me for the instant, and I turned my horse from
the view, gasping for a mouthful of God's pure ozone. But our beeves had
been scenting the creek for hours, and now a few of the leaders started
forward in a trot for it. Like a flash it came to me that death lurked in
that water, and summoning every man within hearing, I dashed to the lead
of our cattle to turn them back over the hill. Jack Splann was on the
point, and we turned the leaders when within two hundred yards of the
creek, frequently jumping our horses over the putrid carcasses of dead
cattle. The main body of the herd were trailing for three quarters of a
mile in our rear, and none of the men dared leave their places. Untying
our slickers, Splann and I fell upon the leaders and beat them back to the
brow of the hill, when an unfortunate breeze was wafted through that
polluted atmosphere from the creek to the cattle's nostrils. Turning upon
us and now augmented to several hundred head, they sullenly started
forward. But in the few minutes' interim, two other lads had come to our
support, and dismounting we rushed them, whipping our slickers into
ribbons over their heads. The mastery of man again triumphed over brutes
in their thirst, for we drove them in a rout back over the divide.</p>
<p>Our success, however, was only temporary. Recovering our horses we beat
the cattle back, seemingly inch by inch, until the rear came up, when we
rounded them into a compact body. They quieted down for a short while,
affording us a breathing spell, for the suddenness of this danger had not
only unnerved me but every one of the outfit who had caught a glimpse of
that field of death. The wagon came up, and those who needed them secured
a change of horses. Leaving the outfit holding the herd, Splann and I took
fresh mounts, and circling around, came in on the windward side of the
creek. As we crossed it half a mile above the scene of disaster, each of
us dipped a hand in the water and tasted it. The alkali was strong as
concentrated lye, blistering our mouths in the experiment. The creek was
not even running, but stood in long, deep pools, clear as crystal and as
inviting to the thirsty as a mountain spring. As we neared the dead
cattle, Splann called my attention to the attitude of the animals when
death relieved them, the heads of fully two thirds being thrown back on
their sides. Many, when stricken, were unable to reach the bank, and died
in the bed of the stream. Making a complete circle of the ghastly scene,
we returned to our own, agreeing that between five and six hundred cattle
had met their fate in those death-dealing pools.</p>
<p>We were not yet out of the woods. On our return, many of the cattle were
lying down, while in the west thunder-clouds were appearing. The North
Fork of the Canadian lay on our left, which was now our only hope for
water, yet beyond our reach for the day. Keeping the slight divide between
us and the creek, we started the herd forward. Since it was impossible to
graze them in their thirsty condition, I was determined to move them as
far as possible before darkness overtook us. But within an hour we crossed
a country trail over which herds had passed on their way northwest, having
left the Chisholm after crossing the North Fork. At the first elevation
which would give me a view of the creek, another scene of death and
desolation greeted my vision, only a few miles above the first one. Yet
from this same hill I could easily trace the meanderings of the creek for
miles as it made a half circle in our front, both inviting and defying us.
Turning the herd due south, we traveled until darkness fell, going into
camp on a high, flat mesa of several thousand acres. But those evening
breezes wafted an invitation to come and drink, and our thirsty herd
refused to bed down. To add to our predicament, a storm thickened in the
west. Realizing that we were confronting the most dangerous night in all
my cattle experience, I ordered every man into the saddle. The remuda and
team were taken in charge by the wrangler and cook, and going from man to
man, I warned them what the consequences would be if we lost the herd
during the night, and the cattle reached the creek.</p>
<p>The cattle surged and drifted almost at will, for we were compelled to
hold them loose to avoid milling. Before ten o'clock the lightning was
flickering overhead and around us, revealing acres of big beeves, which in
an instant might take fright, and then, God help us. But in that night of
trial a mercy was extended to the dumb brutes in charge. A warm rain began
falling, first in a drizzle, increasing after the first hour, and by
midnight we could hear the water slushing under our horses' feet. By the
almost constant flashes of lightning we could see the cattle standing as
if asleep, in grateful enjoyment of the sheeting downpour. As the night
wore on, our fears of a stampede abated, for the buffalo wallows on the
mesa filled, and water was on every hand. The rain ceased before dawn, but
owing to the saturated condition underfoot, not a hoof lay down during the
night, and when the gray of morning streaked the east, what a sense of
relief it brought us. The danger had passed.</p>
<p>Near noon that day, and within a few miles of the North Fork, we rounded
an alkaline plain in which this deadly creek had its source. Under the
influence of the season, alkali had oozed up out of the soil until it
looked like an immense lake under snow. The presence of range cattle in
close proximity to this creek, for we were in the Cherokee Strip, baffled
my reasoning; but the next day we met a range-rider who explained that the
present condition of the stream was unheard of before, and that native
cattle had instinct enough to avoid it. He accounted for its condition as
due to the dry season, there being no general rains sufficient to flood
the alkaline plain and thoroughly flush the creek. In reply to an inquiry
as to the ownership of the unfortunate herds, he informed me that there
were three, one belonging to Bob Houston, another to Major Corouthers, and
the third to a man named Murphy, the total loss amounting to about two
thousand cattle.</p>
<p>From this same range-man we also learned our location. Camp Supply lay up
the North Fork some sixty miles, while a plain trail followed up the first
bottom of the river. Wishing to avoid, if possible, intersecting the
western trail south of Dodge, the next morning I left the herd to follow
up, and rode into Camp Supply before noon. Lovell had sighted me a mile
distant, and after a drink at the sutler's bar, we strolled aside for a
few minutes' chat. Once I had informed him of the locality of the herd and
their condition, he cautioned me not to let my business be known while in
the post. After refreshing the inner man, my employer secured a horse and
started with me on my return. As soon as the flag over Supply faded out of
sight in our rear, we turned to the friendly shade of the timber on the
North Fork and dismounted. I felt that the precaution exercised by the
drover was premonitory of some revelation, and before we arose from the
cottonwood log on which we took seats, the scales had fallen from my eyes
and the atmosphere of mystery cleared.</p>
<p>"Tom," said my employer, "I am up against a bad proposition. I am driving
these Buford cattle, you understand, on a sub-contract. I was the second
lowest bidder with the government, and no sooner was the award made to The
Western Supply Company than they sent an agent who gave me no peace until
they sublet their contract. Unfortunately for me, when the papers were
drawn, my regular attorney was out of town, and I was compelled to depend
on a stranger. After the articles were executed, I submitted the matter to
my old lawyer; he shook his head, arguing that a loophole had been left
open, and that I should have secured an assignment of the original
contract. After studying the matter over, we opened negotiations to secure
a complete relinquishment of the award. But when I offered the company a
thousand dollars over and above what they admitted was their margin, and
they refused it, I opened my eyes to the true situation. If cattle went
up, I was responsible and would have to fill my contract; if they went
down, the company would buy in the cattle and I could go to hell in a
hand-basket for all they cared. Their bond to the government does me no
good, and beyond that they are irresponsible. Beeves have broken from four
to five dollars a head, and unless I can deliver these Buford herds on my
contract, they will lose me fifty thousand dollars."</p>
<p>"Have you any intimation that they expect to buy in other cattle?" I
inquired.</p>
<p>"Yes. I have had a detective in my employ ever since my suspicions were
aroused. There are two parties in Dodge this very minute with the original
contract, properly assigned, and they are looking for cattle to fill it.
That's why I'm stopping here and lying low. I couldn't explain it to you
sooner, but you understand now why I drove those Buford herds in different
road brands. Tom, we're up against it, and we've got to fight the devil
with fire. Henceforth your name will be Tom McIndoo, your herd will be the
property of the Marshall estate, and their agent, my detective, will be
known as Charles Siringo. Any money or supplies you may need in Dodge, get
in the usual form through the firm of Wright, Beverly & Co.—they
understand. Hold your herd out south on Mulberry, and Siringo will have
notice and be looking for you, or you can find him at the Dodge House.
I've sent a courier to Fort Elliott to meet Dave and Quince, and once I
see them, I'll run up to Ogalalla and wait for you. Now, until further
orders, remember you never knew a man by the name of Don Lovell, and by
all means don't forget to use what wits Nature gave you."</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2HCH0007" id="link2HCH0007"></SPAN></p>
<br/>
<h2> CHAPTER VII. WHEN GREEK MEETS GREEK </h2>
<p>It was late that night when I reached the herd. Before I parted with my
employer we had carefully reviewed the situation in its minutest details.
Since the future could not be foreseen, we could only watch and wait. The
Texan may have his shortcomings, but lack of fidelity to a trust is not
one of them, and relying on the metal of my outfit, I at once put them in
possession of the facts. At first their simple minds could hardly grasp
the enormity of the injustice to our employer, but once the land lay
clear, they would gladly have led a forlorn hope in Don Lovell's
interests. Agitation over the matter was maintained at white heat for
several days, as we again angled back towards the Cimarron. Around the
camp-fires at night, the chicanery of The Western Supply Company gave
place to the best stories at our command. "There ought to be a law," said
Runt Pickett, in wrathy indignation, "making it legal to kill some people,
same as rattlesnakes. Now, you take a square gambler and I don't think
anything of losing my money against his game, but one of these sneaking,
under-dealing, top-and-bottom-business pimps, I do despise. You can find
them in every honest calling, same as vultures hover round when cattle are
dying. Honest, fellows, I'd just dearly love to pull on a rope and watch
one of the varmints make his last kick."</p>
<p>Several days of showery weather followed. Crossing the Cimarron, we
followed up its north slope to within thirty miles of the regular western
trail. Not wishing to intercept it until necessity compelled us, when near
the Kansas line we made our last tack for Dodge. The rains had freshened
the country and flushed the creeks, making our work easy, and early in the
month of June we reached the Mulberry. Traveling at random, we struck that
creek about twenty miles below the trail, and moved up the stream to
within a short distance of the old crossing. The presence of a dozen other
herds holding along it forced us into a permanent camp a short half-day's
ride from the town. The horse-wrangler was pressed into service in making
up the first guard that night, and taking Morg Tussler with me, I struck
out for Dodge in the falling darkness. On reaching the first divide, we
halted long enough to locate the camp-fires along the Mulberry to our
rear, while above and below and beyond the river, fires flickered like an
Indian encampment. The lights of Dodge were inviting us, and after making
a rough estimate of the camps in sight, we rode for town, arriving there
between ten and eleven o'clock. The Dodge House was a popular hostelry for
trail men and cattle buyers, and on our making inquiry of the night clerk
if a Mr. Siringo was stopping there, we were informed that he was, but had
retired. I put up a trivial excuse for seeing him, the clerk gave me the
number of his room, and Tussler and I were soon closeted with him. The
detective was a medium-sized, ordinary man, badly pock-marked, with a
soft, musical voice, and apparently as innocent as a boy. In a brief
preliminary conversation, he proved to be a Texan, knowing every in and
out of cattle, having been bred to the occupation. Our relations to each
other were easily established. Reviewing the situation thoroughly, he
informed me that he had cultivated the acquaintance of the parties holding
the assignment of the Buford award. He had represented to them that he was
the fiscal agent of some six herds on the trail that year, three of which
were heavy beeves, and they had agreed to look them over, provided they
arrived before the 15th of the month. He further assured me that the
parties were mere figureheads of The Supply Company; that they were
exceedingly bearish on the market, gloating over the recent depreciation
in prices, and perfectly willing to fatten on the wreck and ruin of
others.</p>
<p>It was long after midnight when the consultation ended. Appointing an hour
for showing the herd the next day, or that one rather, Tussler and I
withdrew, agreeing to be out of town before daybreak. But the blaze of
gambling and the blare of dance-halls held us as in a siren's embrace
until the lights dimmed with the breaking of dawn. Mounting our horses, we
forded the river east of town and avoided the herds, which were just
arising from their bed-grounds. On the divide we halted. Within the
horizon before us, it is safe to assert that one hundred thousand cattle
grazed in lazy contentment, all feeding against the morning breeze. Save
for the freshness of early summer, with its background of green and the
rarified atmosphere of the elevated plain, the scene before us might be
compared to a winter drift of buffalo, ten years previous. Riding down the
farther slope, we reached our camp in time for a late breakfast, the
fifteen-mile ride having whetted our appetites. Three men were on herd,
and sending two more with instructions to water the cattle an hour before
noon, Tussler and I sought the shade of the wagon and fell asleep. It was
some time after midday when, on sighting the expected conveyance
approaching our camp, the cook aroused us. Performing a rather hasty
ablution, I met the vehicle, freshened, and with my wits on tap. I nearly
dragged the detective from the livery rig, addressing him as "Charley,"
and we made a rough ado over each other. Several of the other boys came
forward and, shaking hands, greeted him with equal familiarity. As two
strangers alighted on the opposite side, the detective took me around and
they were introduced as Mr. Field and Mr. Radcliff, prospective beef
buyers. The boys had stretched a tarpaulin, affording ample shade, and
Parent invited every one to dinner. The two strangers were rather testy,
but Siringo ate ravenously, repeatedly asking for things which were
usually kept in a well-stocked chuck-wagon, meanwhile talking with great
familiarity with Tussler and me.</p>
<p>The strangers said little, but were amused at the lightness of our dinner
chat. I could see at a glance that they were not cowmen. They were
impatient to see the cattle; and when dinner was over, I explained to them
that the men on herd would be relieved for dinner by those in camp, and
orders would be given, if it was their wish, to throw the cattle compactly
together. To this Siringo objected. "No, Mac," said he, "that isn't the
right way to show beeves. Here, Morg, listen to me; I'm foreman for the
time being. When you relieve the other lads, edge in your cattle from an
ordinary loose herd until you have them on two or three hundred acres.
Then we can slowly drive through them for an hour or so, or until these
gentlemen are satisfied. They're not wild, are they, Mac?"</p>
<p>I assured every one that the cattle were unusually gentle; that we had not
had a run so far, but urged caution in approaching them with a conveyance.
As soon as the relief started, I brought in the livery team off picket,
watered, and harnessed them into the vehicle. It was my intention to
accompany them on horseback, but Siringo hooted at the idea, and Mr.
Radcliff and I occupied the back seat, puffing splendid cigars. We met the
relieved men coming in, who informed us that the herd was just over the
hill on the south side of the creek. On reaching the gentle rise, there
below us grazed the logy, lazy beeves, while the boys quietly rode round,
silently moving them together as instructed. Siringo drove to their lead,
and halting, we allowed the cattle to loiter past us on either side of the
conveyance. It was an easy herd to show, for the pounds avoirdupois were
there. Numerous big steers, out of pure curiosity, came up near the
vehicle and innocently looked at us as if expecting a dole or sweetmeat. A
snap of the finger would turn them, showing their rounded buttocks, and
they would rejoin the guard of honor. If eyes could speak, the invitation
was timidly extended, "Look at me, Mr. Buyer." We allowed the herd to pass
by us, then slowly circled entirely around them, and finally drove back
and forth through them for nearly two hours, when the prospective buyers
expressed themselves as satisfied.</p>
<p>But the fiscal agent was not. Calling two of the boys, he asked for the
loan of their horses and insisted that the buyers ride the cattle over and
thoroughly satisfy themselves on the brands. The boys gladly yielded, and
as Mr. Field and Mr. Radcliff mounted to ride away, the detective halted
them long enough to say: "Now, gentlemen, I wish to call your attention to
the fact that over one half the herd are in the single Marshall ranch
brand. There are also some five hundred head in the '8=8,' that being an
outside ranch, but belonging to the estate. I am informed that the
remainder of nearly a thousand were turned in by neighboring ranchmen in
making up the herd, and you'll find those in various mixed brands. If
there's a hoof among them not in the 'Open A' road, we'll cut them out for
fear of trouble to the buyer. I never sold a man cattle in my life who
wasn't my customer ever afterward. You gentlemen are strangers to me; and
for that reason I conceal nothing. Now look them over carefully, and keep
a sharp lookout for strays—cattle not in the road brand."</p>
<p>I knew there were about twenty strays in the herd, and informed Siringo to
that effect, but the cattle buyers noticed only two, a red and a roan,
which again classed them as inexperienced men among cattle. We returned to
camp, not a word being said about trading, when the buyers suggested
returning to town. Siringo looked at his watch, asked if there was
anything further they wished to see or know, and expressed himself like a
true Texan, "that there was ample time." I was the only one who had
alighted, and as they started to drive away, I said to Siringo: "Charley,
let me talk to you a minute first. You see how I'm situated here—too
many neighbors. I'm going to ride north of town to-morrow, and if I can
find a good camp on Saw Log, why I'll move over. We are nearly out of
supplies, anyhow, and the wagon can go by town and load up. There's liable
to be a mix-up here some night on the Mulberry, and I'd rather be excused
than present."</p>
<p>"That's all right, Mac; that's just what I want you to do. If we trade,
we'll make the deal within a day or two, and if not you can start right on
for Ogalalla. I've been selling cattle the last few years to the biggest
feeders in Nebraska, and I'm not a little bit afraid of placing those
'Open A's.' About four months full feed on corn will fit those steers to
go to any market. Drop into town on your way back from the Saw Log
to-morrow."</p>
<p>That evening my brother Bob rode into camp. He had seen our employer at
Supply, and accordingly understood the situation. The courier had returned
from Fort Elliott and reported his mission successful; he had met both
Forrest and Sponsilier. The latter had had a slight run in the Panhandle
during a storm, losing a few cattle, which he recovered the next day. For
fear of a repetition, Forrest had taken the lead thereafter, and was due
at Supply within a day or two. Flood and Priest had passed Abilene, Texas,
in safety, but no word had reached our employer since, and it was believed
that they had turned eastward and would come up the Chisholm Trail. Bob
reported the country between Abilene and Doan's Crossing as cut into dust
and barren of sustenance, many weak cattle having died in crossing the dry
belt. But the most startling news, seriously disturbing us both, was that
Archie Tolleston was stationed at Doan's Crossing on Red River as a
trail-cutter. He had come up from the south to Wichita Falls by train with
trail cattle, and finding no opening as a foreman, had accepted the
position of inspector for some Panhandle cattle companies. He and Bob had
had a friendly chat, and Archie admitted that it was purely his own
hot-headedness which prevented his being one of Lovell's foremen on the
present drive. The disturbing feature was, that after leaving headquarters
in Medina County, he had gone into San Antonio, where he met a couple of
strangers who partially promised him a job as trail boss, in case he
presented himself in Dodge about June 15. They had intimated to him that
it was possible they would need a foreman or two who knew the trail from
the Arkansaw to the Yellowstone and Missouri River country. Putting this
and that together, the presence of Archie Tolleston in Dodge was not at
all favorable to the working out of our plans. "And Arch isn't the man to
forget a humiliation," concluded Bob, to which I agreed.</p>
<p>The next morning I rode across to the Saw Log, and up that creek beyond
all the herds. The best prospect for a camp was nearly due north opposite
us, as the outfit lowest down the stream expected to start for the Platte
the next morning. Having fully made up my mind to move camp, I rode for
town, taking dinner on Duck Creek, which was also littered with cattle and
outfits. I reached town early in the afternoon, and after searching all
the hotels, located the fiscal agent in company with the buyers at the
Lone Star saloon. They were seated around a table, and Mr. Field, noticing
my entrance, beckoned me over and offered a chair. As I took the proffered
seat, both strangers turned on me, and Mr. Radcliff said: "McIndoo, this
agent of yours is the hardest man I ever tried to trade with. Here we've
wasted the whole morning dickering, and are no nearer together than when
we started. The only concession which Mr. Siringo seems willing to admit
is that cattle are off from three to five dollars a head, while we contend
that heavy beeves are off seven dollars."</p>
<p>"Excuse me for interrupting," said the fiscal agent, "but since you have
used the words HEAVY BEEVES, either one of you ask Mac, here, what those
'Open A's' will dress to-day, and what they ought to gain in the next
three months on good grass and water. There he sits; ask him."</p>
<p>Mr. Field explained that they had also differed as to what the herd would
dress out, and invited my opinion. "Those beeves will dress off from
forty-five to fifty per cent.," I replied. "The Texan being a gaunt animal
does not shrink like a domestic beef. Take that 'Open A' herd straight
through and they will dress from four fifty to six hundred pounds, or
average better than five hundred all round. In three months, under
favorable conditions, those steers ought to easily put on a hundred pounds
of tallow apiece. Mr. Radcliff, do you remember pointing out a black muley
yesterday and saying that he looked like a native animal? I'll just bet
either one of you a hundred dollars that he'll dress out over five hundred
pounds; and I'll kill him in your presence and you can weigh his quarters
with a steelyard."</p>
<p>They laughed at me, Siringo joining in, and Mr. Field ordered the drinks.
"Mac," said the detective, "these gentlemen are all right, and you
shouldn't take any offense, for I don't blame them for driving a hard
bargain. I'd probably do the same thing if I was the buyer instead of the
seller. And remember, Mac, if the deal goes through, you are to drive the
herd at the seller's risk, and deliver it at any point the buyer
designates, they accepting without expense or reserve the cattle only. It
means over three months' further expense, with a remuda thrown back on
your hands; and all these incidentals run into money fast. Gentlemen,
unless you increase the advance cash payment, I don't see how you can
expect me to shade my offer. What's your hurry, Mac?"</p>
<p>As it was growing late, I had arisen, and saying that I expected to move
camp to-morrow, invited the party to join me at the bar. I informed the
buyers, during the few minutes' interim, that if they wished to look the
cattle over again, the herd would cross the river below old Fort Dodge
about noon the next day. They thanked me for the information, saying it
was quite possible that they might drive down, and discussing the matter
we all passed into the street. With the understanding that the prospect of
making a deal was not hopeless, Siringo excused himself, and we strolled
away together. No sooner was the coast clear than I informed the detective
of the arrival of my brother, putting him in possession of every fact
regarding Archie Tolleston. He readily agreed with me that the recent
break between the latter and his former employer was a dangerous factor,
and even went so far as to say that Tolleston's posing as a trail-cutter
at Doan's Crossing was more than likely a ruse. I was giving the detective
a detailed description of Archie, when he stopped me and asked what his
special weaknesses were, if he had any. "Whiskey and women," I replied.
"That's good," said he, "and I want you to send me in one of your best men
in the morning—I mean one who will drink and carouse. He can watch
the trains, and if this fellow shows up, we'll keep him soaked and let him
enjoy himself. Send me one that's good for a ten days' protracted drunk.
You think the other herds will be here within a few days? That's all I
want to know."</p>
<p>I reached camp a little before dark, and learned that Bob's herd had
dropped in just below us on the Mulberry. He expected to lie over a few
days in passing Dodge, and I lost no time in preparing to visit his camp.
While riding out that evening, I had made up my mind to send in Dorg Seay,
as he was a heady fellow, and in drinking had an oak-tan stomach. Taking
him with me, I rode down the Mulberry and reached the lower camp just as
my brother and his outfit were returning from bedding-down the cattle. Bob
readily agreed that the detective's plans were perfectly feasible, and
offered to play a close second to Seay if it was necessary. And if his own
brother does say so, Bob Quirk never met the man who could drink him under
the table.</p>
<p>My herd started early for the Saw Log, and the wagon for town. Bob had
agreed to go into Dodge in the morning, so Dorg stayed with our outfit and
was to go in with me after crossing the river. We threaded our way through
the other herds, and shortly before noon made an easy ford about a mile
below old Fort Dodge. As we came down to the river, a carriage was seen on
the farther bank, and I dropped from the point back to the drag end. Sure
enough, as we trailed out, the fiscal agent and the buyers were awaiting
me. "Well, Mac, I sold your herd last night after you left," said Siringo,
dejectedly. "It was a kind of compromise trade; they raised the cash
payment to thirty thousand dollars, and I split the difference in price.
The herd goes at $29 a head all round. So from now on, Mac, you're subject
to these gentlemen's orders."</p>
<p>Mr. Field, the elder of the two buyers, suggested that if a convenient
camp could be found, we should lie over a few days, when final
instructions would be given me. He made a memorandum of the number of head
that I claimed in our road brand, and asked me if we could hold up the
herd for a closer inspection. The lead cattle were then nearly a mile
away, and galloping off to overtake the point, I left the party watching
the saddle horses, which were then fording in our rear. But no sooner had
I reached the lead and held up the herd, than I noticed Siringo on the
wrangler's horse, coming up on the opposite side of the column of cattle
from the vehicle. Supposing he had something of a private nature to
communicate, I leisurely rode down the line and met him.</p>
<p>"Did you send that man in this morning?" he sternly demanded. I explained
that my brother had done, properly coached, and that Seay would go in with
me in the course of an hour.</p>
<p>"Give him any money you have and send him at once," commanded the
detective. "Tolleston was due on the ten o'clock train, but it was an hour
late. Those buyers wanted me to wait for it, so he could come along, but I
urged the importance of catching you at the ford. Now, send your man Seay
at once, get Tolleston beastly drunk, and quarter him in some crib until
night."</p>
<p>Unobserved by the buyers, I signaled Seay, and gave him the particulars
and what money I had. He rode back through the saddle stock, recrossed the
river, and after rounding the bend, galloped away. Siringo continued: "You
see, after we traded, they inquired if you were a safe man, saying if you
didn't know the Yellowstone country, they had a man in sight who did. That
was last night, and it seems that this morning they got a letter from
Tolleston, saying he would be there on the next train. They're either
struck on him, or else he's in their employ. Mark my words."</p>
<p>When we had showed the herd to the satisfaction of the purchasers, they
expressed themselves as anxious to return to town; but the fiscal agent of
the Marshall estate wished to look over the saddle horses first. Since
they were unsold, and amounted to quite an item, he begged for just a few
minutes' time to look them over carefully. Who could refuse such a
reasonable request? The herd had started on for the Saw Log, while the
remuda had wandered down the river about half a mile, and it took us
nearly an hour to give them a thorough inspection. Once by ourselves, the
detective said, with a chuckle: "All I was playing for was to get as large
a cash payment as possible. Those mixed brands were my excuse for the
money; the Marshall estate might wait for theirs, but the small ranchmen
would insist on an immediate settlement the moment the cattle were
reported sold. If it wasn't for this fellow Tolleston, I'd sell the other
two Buford herds the day they arrive, and then we could give The Western
Supply Company the laugh. And say, when they drew me a draft for thirty
thousand dollars on a Washington City bank, I never let the ink dry on it
until I took it around to Wright, Beverly & Co., and had them wire its
acceptance. We'll give Seay plenty of time, and I think there'll be an
answer on the check when we get back to town."</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2HCH0008" id="link2HCH0008"></SPAN></p>
<br/>
<h2> CHAPTER VIII. EN PASSANT </h2>
<p>It was intentionally late in the day when we reached Dodge. My horse,
which I was leading, gave considerable trouble while returning, compelling
us to drive slow. The buyers repeatedly complained that dinner would be
over at their hotel, but the detective knew of a good restaurant and
promised all of us a feast. On reaching town, we drove to the stable where
the rig belonged, and once free of the horses, Siringo led the way to a
well-known night-and-day eating-house on a back street. No sooner had we
entered the place than I remembered having my wagon in town, and the
necessity of its reaching camp before darkness made my excuse imperative.
I hurried around to the outfitting house and found the order filled and
all ready to load into the wagon. But Parent was missing, and in
skirmishing about to locate him, I met my brother Bob. Tolleston had
arrived, but his presence had not been discovered until after Seay reached
town. Archie was fairly well "organized" and had visited the hotel where
the buyers were stopping, leaving word for them of his arrival. My brother
and Seay had told him that they had met, down the trail that morning, two
cattle buyers by the name of Field and Radcliff; that they were inquiring
for a herd belonging to Tom Coleman, which was believed to be somewhere
between Dodge and the Cimarron River. The two had assured Tolleston that
the buyers might not be back for a week, and suggested a few drinks in
memory of old times. As Archie was then three sheets in the wind, his
effacement, in the hands of two rounders like Dorg Seay and Bob Quirk, was
an easy matter.</p>
<p>Once the wagon was loaded and started for camp, I returned to the
restaurant. The dinner was in progress, and taking the vacant seat, I
lifted my glass with great regularity as toast after toast was drunk.
Cigars were ordered, and with our feet on the table, the fiscal agent
said: "Gentlemen, this is a mere luncheon and don't count. But if I'm able
to sell you my other two beef herds, why, I'll give you a blow-out right.
We'll make it six-handed—the three trail foremen and ourselves—and
damn the expense so long as the cattle are sold. Champagne will flow like
water, and when our teeth float, we'll wash our feet in what's left."</p>
<p>At a late hour the dinner ended. We were all rather unsteady on our feet,
but the pock-marked detective and myself formed a guard of honor in
escorting the buyers to their hotel, when an officious clerk attempted to
deliver Tolleston's message. But anticipating it, I interrupted his
highness and informed him that we had met the party; I was a thousand
times obliged to him for his kindness, and forced on him a fine cigar,
which had been given me by Bob Wright of the outfitting store. While
Siringo and the buyers passed upstairs, I entertained the office force
below with an account of the sale of my herd, constantly referring to my
new employers. The fiscal agent returned shortly, bought some cigars at
the counter, asked if he could get a room for the night, in case he was
detained in town, and then we passed out of the hotel. This afforded me
the first opportunity to notify Siringo of the presence of Tolleston, and
I withheld nothing which was to his interest to know. But he was impatient
to learn if the draft had been accepted, and asking me to bring my brother
to his room within half an hour, he left me.</p>
<p>It was growing late in the day. The sun had already set when I found my
brother, who was anxious to return to his camp for the night. But I urged
his seeing Siringo first, and after waiting in the latter's room some
time, he burst in upon us with a merry chuckle. "Well, the draft was paid
all right," said he; "and this is Bob Quirk. Boys, things are coming
nicely. This fellow Tolleston is the only cloud in the sky. If we can keep
him down for a week, and the other herds come in shortly, I see nothing to
thwart our plans. Where have you picketed Tolleston?" "Around in Dutch
Jake's crib," replied Bob.</p>
<p>"That's good," continued the fiscal agent, "and I'll just drop in to-night
and see the madam. A little money will go a long way with her, and in a
case like this, the devil himself would be a welcome ally. You boys stay
in town as much as you can and keep Tolleston snowed deep, and I'll take
the buyers down the trail in the morning and meet the herds coming up."</p>
<p>My brother returned to his camp, and Siringo and I separated for the time
being. In '84 Dodge, the Port Said of the plains, was in the full flower
of her wickedness. Literally speaking, night was turned into day in the
old trail town, for with the falling of darkness, the streets filled with
people. Restaurants were crowded with women of the half-world, bar-rooms
thronged with the wayfaring man, while in gambling and dance halls the
range men congregated as if on special invitation. The familiar bark of
the six-shooter was a matter of almost nightly occurrence; a dispute at
the gaming table, a discourteous word spoken, or the rivalry for the smile
of a wanton was provocation for the sacrifice of human life. Here the man
of the plains reverted to and gave utterance to the savagery of his
nature, or, on the other hand, was as chivalrous as in the days of
heraldry.</p>
<p>I knew the town well, this being my third trip over the trail, and mingled
with the gathering throng. Near midnight, and when in the Lady Gay
dance-hall, I was accosted by Dorg Seay and the detective. They had just
left Dutch Jake's, and reported all quiet on the Potomac. Seay had not
only proved himself artful, but a good fellow, and had unearthed the fact
that Tolleston had been in the employ of Field and Radcliff for the past
three months. "You see," said Dorg, "Archie never knew me except the few
days that I was about headquarters in Medina before we started. He fully
believes that I've been discharged—and with three months' pay in my
hip-pocket. The play now is that he's to first help me spend my wages, and
then I'm to have a job under him with beeves which he expects to drive to
the Yellowstone. He has intimated that he might be able to give me a herd.
So, Tom, if I come out there and take possession of your cattle, don't be
surprised. There's only one thing to beat our game—I can't get him
so full but what he's over-anxious to see his employers. But if you
fellows furnish the money, I'll try and pickle him until he forgets them."</p>
<p>The next morning Siringo and the buyers started south on the trail, and I
rode for my camp on the Saw Log. Before riding many miles I sighted my
outfit coming in a long lope for town. They reported everything serene at
camp, and as many of the boys were moneyless, I turned back with them. An
enjoyable day was before us; some drank to their hearts' content, while
all gambled with more or less success. I was anxious that the outfit
should have a good carouse, and showed the lights and shadows of the town
with a pride worthy of one of its founders. Acting the host, I paid for
our dinners; and as we sauntered into the street, puffing vile cigars, we
nearly ran amuck of Dorg Seay and Archie Tolleston, trundling a child's
wagon between them up the street. We watched them, keeping a judicious
distance, as they visited saloon after saloon, the toy wagon always in
possession of one or the other.</p>
<p>While we were amusing ourselves at the antics of these two, my attention
was attracted by a four-mule wagon pulling across the bridge from the
south. On reaching the railroad tracks, I recognized the team, and also
the driver, as Quince Forrest's. Here was news, and accordingly I accosted
him. Fortunately he was looking for me or my brother, as his foreman could
not come in with the wagon, and some one was wanted to vouch for him in
getting the needed supplies. They had reached the Mulberry the evening
before, but several herds had mixed in a run during the night, though
their cattle had escaped. Forrest was determined not to risk a second
night on that stream, and had started his herd with the dawn, expecting to
camp with his cattle that night west on Duck Creek. The herd was then
somewhere between the latter and the main Arkansaw, and the cook was
anxious to secure the supplies and reach the outfit before darkness
overtook him. Sponsilier was reported as two days behind Forrest when the
latter crossed the Cimarron, since when there had been no word from his
cattle. They had met the buyers near the middle of the forenoon, and when
Forrest admitted having the widow Timberlake's beef herd, they turned back
and were spending the day with the cattle.</p>
<p>The situation demanded instant action. Taking Forrest's cook around to our
outfitting store, I introduced and vouched for him. Hurrying back, I sent
Wayne Outcault, as he was a stranger to Tolleston, to mix with the two
rascals and send Seay to me at once. Some little time was consumed in
engaging Archie in a game of pool, but when Dorg presented himself I lost
no time in explaining the situation. He declared that it was no longer
possible to interest Tolleston at Dutch Jake's crib during the day, and
that other means of amusement must be resorted to, as Archie was getting
clamorous to find his employers. To my suggestion to get a livery rig and
take him for a ride, Dorg agreed. "Take him down the river to Spearville,"
I urged, "and try and break into the calaboose if you can. Paint the town
red while you're about it, and if you both land in the lock-up, all the
better. If the rascal insists on coming back to Dodge, start after night,
get lost, and land somewhere farther down the river. Keep him away from
this town for a week, and I'll gamble that you boss a herd for old man Don
next year."</p>
<p>The afternoon was waning. The buyers might return at any moment, as
Forrest's herd had no doubt crossed the river but a few miles above town.</p>
<p>I was impatiently watching the boys, as Dorg and Wayne cautiously herded
Tolleston around to a livery stable, when my brother Bob rode up. He
informed me that he had moved his camp that day across to the Saw Log;
that he had done so to accommodate Jim Flood and The Rebel with a camp;
their herds were due on the Mulberry that evening. The former had stayed
all night at Bob's wagon, and reported his cattle, considering the dry
season, in good condition. As my brother expected to remain in town
overnight, I proposed starting for my camp as soon as Seay and his ward
drove out of sight. They parleyed enough before going to unnerve a saint,
but finally, with the little toy wagon on Tolleston's knee and the other
driving, they started. Hurrahing my lads to saddle up, we rode past the
stable where Seay had secured the conveyance; and while I was posting the
stable-keeper not to be uneasy if the rig was gone a week, Siringo and the
buyers drove past the barn with a flourish. Taking a back street, we
avoided meeting them, and just as darkness was falling, rode into our camp
some twelve miles distant.</p>
<p>My brother Bob's camp was just above us on the creek, and a few miles
nearer town. As his wagon expected to go in after supplies the next
morning, a cavalcade of fifteen men from the two outfits preceded it. My
horse-wrangler had made arrangements with the cook to look after his
charges, and in anticipation of the day before him, had our mounts
corralled before sun-up. Bob's wrangler was also with us, and he and
Levering quarreled all the way in about the respective merits of each
one's remuda. A match was arranged between the two horses which they were
riding, and on reaching a straight piece of road, my man won it and also
considerable money. But no matter how much we differed among ourselves,
when the interests of our employer were at stake, we were a unit. On
reaching town, our numbers were augmented by fully twenty more from the
other Lovell outfits, including the three foremen. My old bunkie, The
Rebel, nearly dragged me from my horse, while Forrest and I forgot past
differences over a social glass. And then there was Flood, my first
foreman, under whom I served my apprenticeship on the trail, the same
quiet, languid old Jim. The various foremen and their outfits were aware
of the impending trouble over the Buford delivery, and quietly expressed
their contempt for such underhand dealings. Quince Forrest had spent the
evening before in town, and about midnight his herd of "Drooping T's" were
sold at about the same figures as mine, except five thousand more
earnest-money, and the privilege of the buyers placing their own foreman
in charge thereafter. Forrest further reported that the fiscal agent and
the strangers had started to meet Sponsilier early that morning, and that
the probability of all the herds moving out in a few days was good.</p>
<p>Seay and his charge were still absent, and the programme, as outlined, was
working out nicely. With the exception of Forrest and myself, the other
foremen were busy looking after their outfits, while Bob Quirk had his
wagon to load and start on its return. Quince confided to me that though
he had stayed on Duck Creek the night before, his herd would noon that day
on Saw Log, and camp that evening on the next creek north. When pressed
for his reasons, he shrugged his shoulders, and with a quiet wink, said:
"If this new outfit put a man over me, just the minute we get out of the
jurisdiction of this county, off his horse he goes and walks back. If it's
Tolleston, the moment he sees me and recognizes my outfit as belonging to
Lovell, he'll raise the long yell and let the cat out. When that happens,
I want to be in an unorganized country where a six-shooter is the highest
authority." The idea was a new one to me, and I saw the advantage of it,
but could not move without Siringo's permission, which Forrest had.
Accordingly about noon, Quince summoned his men together, and they rode
out of town. Looking up a map of Ford County, I was delighted to find that
my camp on Saw Log was but a few miles below the north line.</p>
<p>Among the boys the day passed in riotousness. The carousing was a
necessary stimulant after the long, monotonous drive and exposure to the
elements. Near the middle of the forenoon, Flood and The Rebel rounded up
their outfits and started south for the Mulberry, while Bob Quirk gathered
his own and my lads preparatory to leaving for the Saw Log. I had agreed
to remain on guard for that night, for with the erratic turn on
Tolleston's part, we were doubly cautious. But when my outfit was ready to
start, Runt Pickett, the feisty little rascal, had about twenty dollars in
his possession which he insisted on gambling away before leaving town.
Runt was comfortably drunk, and as Bob urged humoring him, I gave my
consent, provided he would place it all at one bet, to which Pickett
agreed. Leaving the greater part of the boys holding the horses, some
half-dozen of us entered the nearest gambling-house, and Runt bet nineteen
dollars "Alce" on the first card which fell in a monte lay-out. To my
chagrin, he won. My brother was delighted over the little rascal's luck,
and urged him to double his bet, but Pickett refused and invited us all to
have a drink. Leaving this place, we entered the next gaming-hall, when
our man again bet nineteen dollars alce on the first card. Again he won,
and we went the length of the street, Runt wagering nineteen dollars alce
on the first card for ten consecutive times without losing a bet. In his
groggy condition, the prospect of losing Pickett's money was hopeless, and
my brother and I promised him that he might come back the next morning and
try to get rid of his winnings.</p>
<p>Two whole days passed with no report from either Seay or the buyers.
Meanwhile Flood and The Rebel threaded their way through the other herds,
crossing the Arkansaw above town, their wagons touching at Dodge for new
supplies, never halting except temporarily until they reached the creek on
which Forrest was encamped. The absence of Siringo and the buyers, to my
thinking, was favorable, for no doubt when they came in, a deal would have
been effected on the last of the Buford herds. They returned some time
during the night of the third day out, and I failed to see the detective
before sunrise the next morning. When I did meet him, everything seemed so
serene that I felt jubilant over the outlook. Sponsilier's beeves had
firmly caught the fancy of the buyers, and the delay in closing the trade
was only temporary. "I can close the deal any minute I want to," said
Siringo to me, "but we mustn't appear too anxious. Old man Don's idea was
to get about one hundred thousand dollars earnest-money in hand, but if I
can get five or ten more, it might help tide us all over a hard winter. My
last proposition to the buyers was that if they would advance forty-five
thousand dollars on the 'Apple' beeves—Sponsilier's cattle—they
might appoint, at the seller's expense, their own foreman from Dodge to
the point of delivery. They have agreed to give me an answer this morning,
and after sleeping over it, I look for no trouble in closing the trade."</p>
<p>The buyers were also astir early. I met Mr. Field in the post-office,
where he was waiting for it to open. To his general inquiries I reported
everything quiet, but suggested we move camp soon or the cattle would
become restless. He listened very attentively, and promised that within a
few days permission would be given to move out for our final destination.
The morning were the quiet hours of the town, and when the buyers had
received and gone over their large and accumulated mail, the partners came
over to the Dodge House, looking for the fiscal agent, as I supposed, to
close the trade on Sponsilier's cattle. Siringo was the acme of
indifference, but listened to a different tale. A trusted man, in whom
they had placed a great deal of confidence, had failed to materialize. He
was then overdue some four or five days, and foul play was suspected. The
wily detective poured oil on the troubled waters, assuring them if their
man failed to appear within a day or two, he would gladly render every
assistance in looking him up. Another matter of considerable moment would
be the arrival that morning of a silent partner, the financial man of the
firm from Washington, D.C. He was due to arrive on the "Cannon Ball" at
eight o'clock, and we all sauntered down to meet the train from the East.
On its arrival, Siringo and I stood back among the crowd, but the buyers
pushed forward, looking for their friend. The first man to alight from the
day coach, coatless and with both eyes blackened, was Archie Tolleston; he
almost fell into the arms of our cattle buyers. I recognized Archie at a
glance, and dragging the detective inside the waiting-room, posted him as
to the arrival with the wild look and blood-shot optics. Siringo cautioned
me to go to his room and stay there, promising to report as the day
advanced.</p>
<p>Sponsilier had camped the night before on the main river, and as I crossed
to the hotel, his commissary pulled up in front of Wright, Beverly &
Co.'s outfitting store. Taking the chances of being seen, I interviewed
Dave's cook, and learned that his foreman had given him an order for the
supplies, and that Sponsilier would not come in until after the herd had
passed the Saw Log. As I turned away, my attention was attracted by the
deference being shown the financial man of the cattle firm, as the party
wended their way around to the Wright House. The silent member of the firm
was a portly fellow, and there was no one in the group but did him honor,
even the detective carrying a light grip, while Tolleston lumbered along
with a heavy one.</p>
<p>My effacement was only temporary, as Siringo appeared at his room shortly
afterward. "Well, Quirk," said he, with a smile, "I reckon my work is all
done. Field and Radcliff didn't feel like talking business this morning,
at least until they had shown the financial member their purchases, both
real and prospective. Yes, they took the fat Colonel and Tolleston with
them and started for your camp with a two-seated rig. From yours they
expect to drive to Forrest's camp, and then meet Sponsilier on the way
coming back. No; I declined a very pressing invitation to go along—you
see my mixed herds might come in any minute. And say, that man Tolleston
was there in a hundred places with the big conversation; he claims to have
been kidnapped, and was locked up for the last four days. He says he
whipped your man Seay, but couldn't convince the authorities of his
innocence until last night, when they set him free. According to his
report, Seay's in jail yet at a little town down the road called Kinsley.
Now, I'm going to take a conveyance to Spearville, and catch the first
train out of there East. Settle my bill with this hotel, and say that I
may be out of town for a few days, meeting a herd which I'm expecting.
When Tolleston recognizes all three of those outfits as belonging to Don
Lovell—well, won't there be hell to pay? Yes, my work is all done."</p>
<p>I fully agreed with the detective that Archie would recognize the remudas
and outfits as Lovell's, even though the cattle were road-branded out of
the usual "Circle Dot." Siringo further informed me that north of Ford
County was all an unorganized country until the Platte River was reached
at Ogalalla, and advised me to ignore any legal process served outside
those bounds. He was impatient to get away, and when he had put me in
possession of everything to our advantage, we wrung each other's hands in
farewell. As the drive outlined by the cattle buyers would absorb the day,
I felt no necessity of being in a hurry. The absence of Dorg Seay was
annoying, and the fellow had done us such valiant service, I felt in honor
bound to secure his release. Accordingly I wired the city marshal at
Kinsley, and received a reply that Seay had been released early that
morning, and had started overland for Dodge. This was fortunate, and after
settling all bills, I offered to pay the liveryman in advance for the rig
in Seay's possession, assuring him by the telegram that it would return
that evening. He refused to make any settlement until the condition of
both the animal and the conveyance had been passed upon, and fearful lest
Dorg should come back moneyless, I had nothing to do but await his return.
I was growing impatient to reach camp, there being no opportunity to send
word to my outfit, and the passing hours seemed days, when late in the
afternoon Dorg Seay drove down the main street of Dodge as big as a
government beef buyer. The liveryman was pleased and accepted the regular
rate, and Dorg and I were soon galloping out of town. As we neared the
first divide, we dropped our horses into a walk to afford them a breathing
spell, and in reply to my fund of information, Seay said:</p>
<p>"So Tolleston's telling that he licked me. Well, that's a good one on this
one of old man Seay's boys. Archie must have been crazy with the heat. The
fact is that he had been trying to quit me for several days. We had
exhausted every line of dissipation, and when I decided that it was no
longer possible to hold him, I insulted and provoked him into a quarrel,
and we were both arrested. Licked me, did he? He couldn't lick his upper
lip."</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2HCH0009" id="link2HCH0009"></SPAN></p>
<br/>
<h2> CHAPTER IX. AT SHERIFF'S CREEK </h2>
<p>The sun had nearly set when we galloped into Bob Quirk's camp. Halting
only long enough to advise my brother of the escape of Tolleston and his
joining the common enemy, I asked him to throw any pursuit off our trail,
as I proposed breaking camp that evening. Seay and myself put behind us
the few miles between the two wagons, and dashed up to mine just as the
outfit were corralling the remuda for night-horses. Orders rang out, and
instead of catching our regular guard mounts, the boys picked the best
horses in their strings. The cattle were then nearly a mile north of camp,
coming in slowly towards the bed-ground, but a half-dozen of us rushed
away to relieve the men on herd and turn the beeves back. The work-mules
were harnessed in, and as soon as the relieved herders secured mounts, our
camp of the past few days was abandoned. The twilight of evening was upon
us, and to the rattling of the heavily loaded wagon and the shouting of
the wrangler in our rear were added the old herd songs. The cattle,
without trail or trace to follow, and fit ransom for a dozen kings in
pagan ages, moved north as if imbued with the spirit of the occasion.</p>
<p>A fair moon favored us. The night was an ideal one for work, and about
twelve o'clock we bedded down the herd and waited for dawn. As we expected
to move again with the first sign of day, no one cared to sleep; our
nerves were under a high tension with expectation of what the coming day
might bring forth. Our location was an unknown quantity. All agreed that
we were fully ten miles north of the Saw Log, and, with the best reasoning
at my command, outside the jurisdiction of Ford County. The regular trail
leading north was some six or eight miles to the west, and fearful that we
had not reached unorganized territory, I was determined to push farther on
our course before veering to the left. The night halt, however, afforded
us an opportunity to compare notes and arrive at some definite
understanding as to the programme of the forthcoming day. "Quirk, you
missed the sight of your life," said Jake Blair, as we dismounted around
the wagon, after bedding the cattle, "by not being there when the
discovery was made that these 'Open A's' were Don Lovell's cattle.
Tolleston, of course, made the discovery; but I think he must have smelt
the rat in advance. Archie and the buyers arrived for a late dinner, and
several times Tolleston ran his eye over one of the boys and asked,
'Haven't I met you somewhere?' but none of them could recall the meeting.
Then he got to nosing around the wagon and noticing every horse about
camp. The road-brand on the cattle threw him off the scent just for a
second, but when he began reading the ranch-brands, he took a new hold. As
he looked over the remuda, the scent seemed to get stronger, and when he
noticed the 'Circle Dot' on those work-mules, he opened up and bayed as if
he had treed something. And sure enough he had; for you know, Tom, those
calico lead mules belonged in his team last year, and he swore he'd know
them in hell, brand or no brand. When Archie announced the outfit, lock,
stock, and barrel, as belonging to Don Lovell, the old buyers turned pale
as ghosts, and the fat one took off his hat and fanned himself. That act
alone was worth the price of admission. But when we boys were appealed to,
we were innocent and likewise ignorant, claiming that we always understood
that the herd belonged to the Marshall estate, but then we were just
common hands and not supposed to know the facts in the case. Tolleston
argued one way, and we all pulled the other, so they drove away, looking
as if they hoped it wasn't true. But it was the sight of your life to see
that fat fellow fan himself as he kept repeating, 'I thought you boys
hurried too much in buying these cattle.'"</p>
<p>The guards changed hourly. No fire was allowed, but Parent set out all the
cold food available, and supplementing this with canned goods, we had a
midnight lunch. Dorg Seay regaled the outfit with his recent experience,
concealing nothing, and regretfully admitting that his charge had escaped
before the work was finished. A programme was outlined for the morrow, the
main feature of which was that, in case of pursuit, we would all tell the
same story. Dawn came between three and four on those June mornings, and
with the first streak of gray in the east we divided the outfit and
mounted our horses, part riding to push the cattle off their beds and the
others to round in the remuda. Before the herd had grazed out a half-mile,
we were overtaken by half the outfit on fresh mounts, who at once took
charge of the herd. When the relieved men had secured horses, I remained
behind and assisted in harnessing in the team and gathering the saddle
stock, a number of which were missed for lack of proper light. With the
wagon once started, Levering and myself soon had the full remuda in hand
and were bringing up the rear in a long, swinging trot. Before the sun
peeped over the eastern horizon, we passed the herd and overtook the
wagon, which was bumping along over the uneven prairie. Ordering the cook
to have breakfast awaiting us beyond a divide which crossed our front, I
turned back to the herd, now strung out in regular trailing form. The halt
ahead would put us full fifteen miles north of our camp on the Saw Log. An
hour later, as we were scaling the divide, one of the point-men sighted a
posse in our rear, coming after us like fiends. I was riding in the swing
at the time, the herd being strung out fully a mile, and on catching first
sight of the pursuers, turned and hurried to the rear. To my agreeable
surprise, instead of a sheriff's posse, my brother and five of his men
galloped up and overtook us.</p>
<p>"Well, Tom, it's a good thing you moved last night," said Bob, as he
reined in his reeking horse. "A deputy sheriff and posse of six men had me
under arrest all night, thinking I was the Quirk who had charge of Don
Lovell's 'Open A' herd. Yes, they came to my camp about midnight, and I
admitted that my name was Quirk and that we were holding Lovell's cattle.
They guarded me until morning,—I slept like an innocent babe myself,—when
the discovery was made that my herd was in a 'Circle Dot' road-brand
instead of an 'Open A,' which their warrant called for. Besides, I proved
by fourteen competent witnesses, who had known me for years, that my name
was Robert Burns Quirk. My outfit told the posse that the herd they were
looking for were camped three miles below, but had left during the
afternoon before, and no doubt were then beyond their bailiwick. I gave
the posse the horse-laugh, but they all went down the creek, swearing they
would trail down that herd of Lovell's. My cattle are going to follow up
this morning, so I thought I'd ride on ahead and be your guest in case
there is any fun to-day."</p>
<p>The auxiliary was welcomed. The beeves moved on up the divide like
veterans assaulting an intrenchment. On reaching a narrow mesa on the
summit, a northwest breeze met the leaders, and facing it full in the eye,
the herd was allowed to tack westward as they went down the farther slope.
This watershed afforded a fine view of the surrounding country, and from
its apex I scanned our rear for miles without detecting any sign of
animate life. From our elevation, the plain dipped away in every
direction. Far to the east, the depression seemed as real as a trough in
the ocean when seen from the deck of a ship. The meanderings of this
divide were as crooked as a river, and as we surveyed its course one of
Bob's men sighted with the naked eye two specks fully five miles distant
to the northwest, and evidently in the vicinity of the old trail. The
wagon was in plain view, and leaving three of my boys to drift the cattle
forward, we rode away with ravenous appetites to interview the cook.
Parent maintained his reputation as host, and with a lofty conversation
reviewed the legal aspect of the situation confronting us. A hasty
breakfast over, my brother asked for mounts for himself and men; and as we
were corralling our remuda, one of the three lads on herd signaled to us
from the mesa's summit. Catching the nearest horses at hand, and taking
our wrangler with us, we cantered up the slope to our waiting sentinel.</p>
<p>"You can't see them now," said Burl Van Vedder, our outlook; "but wait a
few minutes and they'll come up on higher ground. Here, here, you are
looking a mile too far to the right—they're not following the
cattle, but the wagon's trail. Keep your eyes to the left of that shale
outcropping, and on a line with that lone tree on the Saw Log. Hold your
horses a minute; I've been watching them for half an hour before I called
you; be patient, and they'll rise like a trout. There! there comes one on
a gray horse. See those two others just behind him. Now, there come the
others—six all told." Sure enough, there came the sleuths of deputy
sheriffs, trailing up our wagon. They were not over three miles away, and
after patiently waiting nearly an hour, we rode to the brink of the slope,
and I ordered one of the boys to fire his pistol to attract their
attention. On hearing the report, they halted, and taking off my hat I
waved them forward. Feeling that we were on safe territory, I was
determined to get in the first bluff, and as they rode up, I saluted the
leader and said:</p>
<p>"Good-morning, Mr. Sheriff. What are you fooling along on our wagon track
for, when you could have trailed the herd in a long lope? Here we've
wasted a whole hour waiting for you to come up, just because the sheriff's
office of Ford County employs as deputies 'nesters' instead of plainsmen.
But now since you are here, let us proceed to business, or would you like
to breakfast first? Our wagon is just over the other slope, and you-all
look pale around the gills this morning after your long ride and sleepless
night. Which shall it be, business or breakfast?"</p>
<p>Haughtily ignoring my irony, the leader of the posse drew from his pocket
several papers, and first clearing his throat, said in an imperious tone,
"I have a warrant here for the arrest of Tom Quirk, alias McIndoo, and a
distress warrant for a herd of 'Open A'—"</p>
<p>"Old sport, you're in the right church, but the wrong pew," I interrupted.
"This may be the state of Kansas, but at present we are outside the
bailiwick of Ford County, and those papers of yours are useless. Let me
take those warrants and I'll indorse them for you, so as to dazzle your
superiors on their return without the man or property. I was deputized
once by a constable in Texas to assist in recovering some cattle, but just
like the present case they got out of our jurisdiction before we overtook
them. The constable was a lofty, arrogant fellow like yourself, but had
sense enough to keep within his rights. But when it came to indorsing the
warrant for return, we were all up a stump, and rode twenty miles out of
our way so as to pass Squire Little's ranch and get his advice on the
matter. The squire had been a justice in Tennessee before coming to our
state, and knew just what to say. Now let me take those papers, and I'll
indorse them 'Non est inventus,' which is Latin for SCOOTED, BY GOSH!
Ain't you going to let me have them?"</p>
<p>"Now, look here, young man," scornfully replied the chief deputy, "I'll—"</p>
<p>"No, you won't," I again interrupted. "Let me read you a warrant from a
higher court. In the name of law, you are willing to prostitute your
office to assist a gang of thieves who have taken advantage of an
opportunity to ruin my employer, an honest trail drover. The warrant I'm
serving was issued by Judge Colt, and it says he is supreme in unorganized
territory; that your official authority ceases the moment you step outside
your jurisdiction, and you know the Ford County line is behind us. Now, as
a citizen, I'll treat you right, but as an official, I won't even listen
to you. And what's more, you can't arrest me or any man in my outfit; not
that your hair's the wrong color, but because you lack authority. I'm the
man you're looking for, and these are Don Lovell's cattle, but you can't
touch a hoof of them, not even a stray. Now, if you want to dispute the
authority which I've sighted, all you need to do is pull your guns and
open your game."</p>
<p>"Mr. Quirk," said the deputy, "you are a fugitive from justice, and I can
legally take you wherever I find you. If you resist arrest, all the worse,
as it classes you an outlaw. Now, my advice is—"</p>
<p>But the sentence was never finished, for coming down the divide like a
hurricane was a band of horsemen, who, on sighting us, raised the long
yell, and the next minute Dave Sponsilier and seven of his men dashed up.
The boys opened out to avoid the momentum of the onslaught, but the
deputies sat firm; and as Sponsilier and his lads threw their horses back
on their haunches in halting, Dave stood in his stirrups, and waving his
hat shouted, "Hurrah for Don Lovell, and to hell with the sheriff and
deputies of Ford County!" Sponsilier and I were great friends, as were
likewise our outfits, and we nearly unhorsed each other in our rough but
hearty greetings. When quiet was once more restored, Dave continued: "I
was in Dodge last night, and Bob Wright put me next that the sheriff was
going to take possession of two of old man Don's herds this morning. You
can bet your moccasins that the grass didn't grow very much while I was
getting back to camp. Flood and The Rebel took fifteen men and went to
Quince's support, and I have been scouting since dawn trying to locate
you. Yes, the sheriff himself and five deputies passed up the trail before
daybreak to arrest Forrest and take possession of his herd—I don't
think. I suppose these strangers are deputy sheriffs? If it was me, do you
know what I'd do with them?"</p>
<p>The query was half a command. It required no order, for in an instant the
deputies were surrounded, and had it not been for the cool judgment of Bob
Quirk, violence would have resulted. The primitive mind is slow to resent
an affront, and while the chief deputy had couched his last remarks in
well-chosen language, his intimation that I was a fugitive from justice,
and an outlaw in resisting arrest, was tinder to stubble. Knowing the
metal of my outfit, I curbed the tempest within me, and relying on a
brother whom I would gladly follow to death if need be, I waved hands off
to my boys. "Now, men," said Bob to the deputies, "the easiest way out of
this matter is the best. No one here has committed any crime subjecting
him to arrest, neither can you take possession of any cattle belonging to
Don Lovell. I'll renew the invitation for you to go down to the wagon and
breakfast, or I'll give you the best directions at my command to reach
Dodge. Instead of trying to attempt to accomplish your object you had
better go back to the chaparral—you're spelled down. Take your
choice, men."</p>
<p>Bob's words had a soothing effect. He was thirty-three years old and a
natural born leader among rough men. His advice carried the steely ring of
sincerity, and for the first time since the meeting, the deputies wilted.
The chief one called his men aside, and after a brief consultation my
brother was invited to join them, which he did. I afterwards learned that
Bob went into detail in defining our position in the premises, and the
posse, once they heard the other side of the question, took an entirely
different view of the matter. While the consultation was in progress, we
all dismounted; cigarettes were rolled, and while the smoke arose in
clouds, we reviewed the interim since we parted in March in old Medina.
The sheriff's posse accompanied my brother to the wagon, and after
refreshing themselves, remounted their horses. Bob escorted them back
across the summit of the mesa, and the olive branch waved in peace on the
divide.</p>
<p>The morning was not far advanced. After a brief consultation, the two
older foremen urged that we ride to the relief of Forrest. A hint was
sufficient, and including five of my best-mounted men, a posse of twenty
of us rode away. We held the divide for some distance on our course, and
before we left it, a dust-cloud, indicating the presence of Bob's herd,
was sighted on the southern slope, while on the opposite one my cattle
were beginning to move forward. Sponsilier knew the probable whereabouts
of Forrest, and under his lead we swung into a free gallop as we dropped
down the northern slope from the mesa. The pace was carrying us across
country at a rate of ten miles an hour, scarcely a word being spoken, as
we shook out kink after kink in our horses or reined them in to recover
their wind. Our objective point was a slight elevation on the plain, from
which we expected to sight the trail if not the herds of Flood, Forrest,
and The Rebel. On reaching this gentle swell, we reined in and halted our
horses, which were then fuming with healthy sweat. Both creek and trail
were clearly outlined before us, but with the heat-waves and mirages
beyond, our view was naturally restricted. Sponsilier felt confident that
Forrest was north of the creek and beyond the trail, and again shaking out
our horses, we silently put the intervening miles behind us. Our mounts
were all fresh and strong, and in crossing the creek we allowed them a few
swallows of water before continuing our ride. We halted again in crossing
the trail, but it was so worn by recent use that it afforded no clue to
guide us in our quest. But from the next vantage-point which afforded us a
view, a sea of cattle greeted our vision, all of which seemed under herd.
Wagon sheets were next sighted, and finally a horseman loomed up and
signaled to us. He proved to be one of Flood's men, and under his
direction Forrest's camp and cattle were soon located. The lad assured us
that a pow-wow had been in session since daybreak, and we hurried away to
add our numbers to its council. When we sighted Forrest's wagon among some
cottonwoods, a number of men were just mounting to ride away, and before
we reached camp, they crossed the creek heading south. A moment later,
Forrest walked out, and greeting us, said:</p>
<p>"Hello, fellows. Get down and let your horses blow and enjoy yourselves.
You're just a minute late to meet some very nice people. Yes, we had the
sheriff from Dodge and a posse of men for breakfast. No—no
particular trouble, except John Johns, the d—fool, threw the loop of
his rope over the neck of the sheriff's horse, and one of the party
offered to unsling a carbine. But about a dozen six-shooters clicked
within hearing, and he acted on my advice and cut gun-plays out. No
trouble at all except a big medicine talk, and a heap of legal phrases
that I don't sabe very clear. Turn your horses loose, I tell you, for I'm
going to kill a nice fat stray, and towards evening, when the other herds
come up, we'll have a round-up of Don Lovell's outfits. I'll make a little
speech, and on account of the bloodless battle this morning, this stream
will be rechristened Sheriff's Creek."</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2HCH0010" id="link2HCH0010"></SPAN></p>
<br/>
<h2> CHAPTER X. A FAMILY REUNION </h2>
<p>The hospitality of a trail wagon was aptly expressed in the invitation to
enjoy ourselves. Some one had exercised good judgment in selecting a camp,
for every convenience was at hand, including running water and ample shade
from a clump of cottonwoods. Turning our steaming horses free, we threw
ourselves, in complete abandonment and relaxation, down in the nearest
shade. Unmistakable hints were given our host of certain refreshments
which would be acceptable, and in reply Forrest pointed to a bucket of
creek water near the wagon wheel, and urged us not to be at all backward.</p>
<p>Every one was well fortified with brown cigarette papers and smoking
tobacco, and singly and in groups we were soon smoking like hired hands
and reviewing the incidents of the morning. Forrest's cook, a tall,
red-headed fellow, in anticipation of the number of guests his wagon would
entertain for the day, put on the little and the big pot. As it only
lacked an hour of noon on our arrival, the promised fresh beef would not
be available in time for dinner; but we were not like guests who had to
hurry home—we would be right there when supper was ready.</p>
<p>The loss of a night's sleep on my outfit was a good excuse for an
after-dinner siesta. Untying our slickers, we strolled out of hearing of
the camp, and for several hours obliterated time. About three o'clock Bob
Quirk aroused and informed us that he had ordered our horses, and that the
signal of Sponsilier's cattle had been seen south on the trail. Dave was
impatient to intercept his herd and camp them well down the creek, at
least below the regular crossing. This would throw Bob's and my cattle
still farther down the stream; and we were all determined to honor Forrest
with our presence for supper and the evening hours. Quince's wrangler
rustled in the horses, and as we rejoined the camp the quarters of a beef
hung low on a cottonwood, while a smudge beneath them warned away all
insect life. Leaving word that we would return during the evening, the
eleventh-hour guests rode away in the rough, uneven order in which we had
arrived. Sponsilier and his men veered off to the south, Bob Quirk and his
lads soon following, while the rest of us continued on down the creek. My
cattle were watering when we overtook them, occupying fully a mile of the
stream, and nearly an hour's ride below the trail crossing. It takes a
long time to water a big herd thoroughly, and we repeatedly turned them
back and forth across the creek, but finally allowed them to graze away
with a broad, fan-like front. As ours left the stream, Bob's cattle were
coming in over a mile above, and in anticipation of a dry camp that night,
Parent had been advised to fill his kegs and supply himself with wood.</p>
<p>Detailing the third and fourth guard to wrangle the remuda, I sent
Levering up the creek with my brother's horses and to recover our loaned
saddle stock; even Bob Quirk was just thoughtless enough to construe a
neighborly act into a horse trade. About two miles out from the creek and
an equal distance from the trail, I found the best bed-ground of the trip.
It sloped to the northwest, was covered with old dry grass, and would
catch any vagrant breeze except an eastern one. The wagon was ordered into
camp, and the first and second guards were relieved just long enough to
secure their night-horses. Nearly all of these two watches had been with
me during the day, and on the return of Levering with the horses, we
borrowed a number of empty flour-sacks for beef, and cantered away,
leaving behind only the cook and the first two guards.</p>
<p>What an evening and night that was! As we passed up the creek, we sighted
in the gathering twilight the camp-fires of Sponsilier and my brother,
several miles apart and south of the stream. When we reached Forrest's
wagon the clans were gathering, The Rebel and his crowd being the last to
come in from above. Groups of saddle horses were tied among the trees,
while around two fires were circles of men broiling beef over live coals.
The red-headed cook had anticipated forty guests outside of his own
outfit, and was pouring coffee into tin cups and shying biscuit right and
left on request. The supper was a success, not on account of the spread or
our superior table manners, but we graced the occasion with appetites
which required the staples of life to satisfy. Then we smoked, falling
into groups when the yarning began. All the fresh-beef stories of our
lives, and they were legion, were told, no one group paying any attention
to another.</p>
<p>"Every time I run a-foul of fresh beef," said The Rebel, as he settled
back comfortably between the roots of a cottonwood, with his back to its
trunk, "it reminds me of the time I was a prisoner among the Yankees. It
was the last year of the war, and I had got over my first desire to
personally whip the whole North. There were about five thousand of us held
as prisoners of war for eleven months on a peninsula in the Chesapeake
Bay. The fighting spirit of the soldier was broken in the majority of us,
especially among the older men and those who had families. But we
youngsters accepted the fortunes of war and were glad that we were alive,
even if we were prisoners. In my mess in prison there were fifteen, all
having been captured at the same time, and many of us comrades of three
years' standing.</p>
<p>"I remember the day we were taken off the train and marched through the
town for the prison, a Yankee band in our front playing national airs and
favorites of their army, and the people along the route jeering us and
asking how we liked the music. Our mess held together during the march,
and some of the boys answered them back as well as they could. Once inside
the prison stockade, we went into quarters and our mess still held
together. Before we had been there long, one day there was a call among
the prisoners for volunteers to form a roustabout crew. Well, I enlisted
as a roustabout. We had to report to an officer twice a day, and then were
put under guard and set to work. The kind of labor I liked best was
unloading the supplies for the prison, which were landed on a near-by
wharf. This roustabout crew had all the unloading to do, and the reason I
liked it was it gave us some chance to steal. Whenever there was anything
extra, intended for the officers, to be unloaded, look out for accidents.
Broken crates were common, and some of the contents was certain to reach
our pockets or stomachs, in spite of the guard.</p>
<p>"I was a willing worker and stood well with the guards. They never
searched me, and when they took us outside the stockade, the captain of
the guard gave me permission, after our work was over, to patronize the
sutler's store and buy knick-knacks from the booths. There was always some
little money amongst soldiers, even in prison, and I was occasionally
furnished money by my messmates to buy bread from a baker's wagon which
was outside the walls. Well, after I had traded a few times with the
baker's boy, I succeeded in corrupting him. Yes, had him stealing from his
employer and selling to me at a discount. I was a good customer, and being
a prisoner, there was no danger of my meeting his employer. You see the
loaves were counted out to him, and he had to return the equivalent or the
bread. At first the bread cost me ten cents for a small loaf, but when I
got my scheme working, it didn't cost me five cents for the largest loaves
the boy could steal from the bakery. I worked that racket for several
months, and if we hadn't been exchanged, I'd have broke that baker, sure.</p>
<p>"But the most successful scheme I worked was stealing the kidneys out of
beef while we were handling it. It was some distance from the wharf to the
warehouse, and when I'd get a hind quarter of beef on my shoulder, it was
an easy trick to burrow my hand through the tallow and get a good grip on
the kidney. Then when I'd throw the quarter down in the warehouse, it
would be minus a kidney, which secretly found lodgment in a large pocket
in the inside of my shirt. I was satisfied with one or two kidneys a day
when I first worked the trick, but my mess caught on, and then I had to
steal by wholesale to satisfy them. Some days, when the guards were too
watchful, I couldn't get very many, and then again when things were lax,
'Elijah's Raven' would get a kidney for each man in our mess. With the
regular allowance of rations and what I could steal, when the Texas troops
were exchanged, our mess was ragged enough, but pig-fat, and slick as
weasels. Lord love you, but we were a great mess of thieves."</p>
<p>Nearly all of Flood's old men were with him again, several of whom were
then in Forrest's camp. A fight occurred among a group of saddle horses
tied to the front wheel of the wagon, among them being the mount of John
Officer. After the belligerents had been quieted, and Officer had removed
and tied his horse to a convenient tree, he came over and joined our
group, among which were the six trail bosses. Throwing himself down among
us, and using Sponsilier for a pillow and myself for footstool, he
observed:</p>
<p>"All you foremen who have been over the Chisholm Trail remember the
stage-stand called Bull Foot, but possibly some of the boys haven't. Well,
no matter, it's just about midway between Little Turkey Creek and Buffalo
Springs on that trail, where it runs through the Cherokee Strip. I worked
one year in that northern country—lots of Texas boys there too. It
was just about the time they began to stock that country with Texas
steers, and we rode lines to keep our cattle on their range. You bet,
there was riding to do in that country then. The first few months that
these Southern steers are turned loose on a new range, Lord! but they do
love to drift against a breeze. In any kind of a rain-storm, they'll
travel farther in a night than a whole outfit can turn them back in a day.</p>
<p>"Our camp was on the Salt Fork of the Cimarron, and late in the fall when
all the beeves had been shipped, the outfit were riding lines and
loose-herding a lot of Texas yearlings, and mixed cattle, natives to that
range. Up in that country they have Indian summer and Squaw winter, both
occurring in the fall. They have lots of funny weather up there. Well,
late one evening that fall there came an early squall of Squaw winter,
sleeted and spit snow wickedly. The next morning there wasn't a hoof in
sight, and shortly after daybreak we were riding deep in our saddles to
catch the lead drift of our cattle. After a hard day's ride, we found that
we were out several hundred head, principally yearlings of the through
Texas stock. You all know how locoed a bunch of dogies can get—we
hunted for three days and for fifty miles in every direction, and neither
hide, hair, nor hoof could we find. It was while we were hunting these
cattle that my yarn commences.</p>
<p>"The big augers of the outfit lived in Wichita, Kansas. Their foreman,
Bibleback Hunt, and myself were returning from hunting this missing bunch
of yearlings when night overtook us, fully twenty-five miles from camp.
Then this Bull Foot stage came to mind, and we turned our horses and rode
to it. It was nearly dark when we reached it, and Bibleback said for me to
go in and make the talk. I'll never forget that nice little woman who met
me at the door of that sod shack. I told her our situation, and she seemed
awfully gracious in granting us food and shelter for the night. She told
us we could either picket our horses or put them in the corral and feed
them hay and grain from the stage-company's supply. Now, old Bibleback was
what you might call shy of women, and steered clear of the house until she
sent her little boy out and asked us to come in. Well, we sat around in
the room, owly-like, and to save my soul from the wrath to come, I
couldn't think of a word that was proper to say to the little woman, busy
getting supper. Bibleback was worse off than I was; he couldn't do
anything but look at the pictures on the wall. What was worrying me was,
had she a husband? Or what was she doing away out there in that lonesome
country? Then a man old enough to be her grandfather put in an appearance.
He was friendly and quite talkative, and I built right up to him. And then
we had a supper that I distinctly remember yet. Well, I should say I do—it
takes a woman to get a good supper, and cheer it with her presence,
sitting at the head of the table and pouring the coffee.</p>
<p>"This old man was a retired stage-driver, and was doing the wrangling act
for the stage-horses. After supper I went out to the corral and wormed the
information out of him that the woman was a widow; that her husband had
died before she came there, and that she was from Michigan. Amongst other
things that I learned from the old man was that she had only been there a
few months, and was a poor but deserving woman. I told Bibleback all this
after we had gone to bed, and we found that our finances amounted to only
four dollars, which she was more than welcome to. So the next morning
after breakfast, when I asked her what I owed her for our trouble, she
replied so graciously: 'Why, gentlemen, I couldn't think of taking
advantage of your necessity to charge you for a favor that I'm only too
happy to grant.' 'Oh,' said I, 'take this, anyhow,' laying the silver on
the corner of the table and starting for the door, when she stopped me.
'One moment, sir; I can't think of accepting this. Be kind enough to grant
my request,' and returned the money. We mumbled out some thanks, bade her
good-day, and started for the corral, feeling like two sheep thieves.
While we were saddling up—will you believe it?—her little boy
came out to the corral and gave each one of us as fine a cigar as ever I
buttoned my lip over. Well, fellows, we had had it put all over us by this
little Michigan woman, till we couldn't look each other in the face. We
were accustomed to hardship and neglect, but here was genuine kindness
enough to kill a cat.</p>
<p>"Until we got within five miles of our camp that morning, old Bibleback
wouldn't speak to me as we rode along. Then he turned halfway in his
saddle and said: 'What kind of folks are those?' 'I don't know,' I
replied, 'what kind of people they are, but I know they are good ones.'
'Well, I'll get even with that little woman if it takes every sou in my
war-bags,' said Hunt.</p>
<p>"When within a mile of camp, Bibleback turned again in his saddle and
asked, 'When is Christmas?' 'In about five weeks,' I answered. 'Do you
know where that big Wyoming stray ranges?' he next asked. I trailed onto
his game in a second. 'Of course I do.' 'Well,' says he, 'let's kill him
for Christmas and give that little widow every ounce of the meat. It'll be
a good one on her, won't it? We'll fool her a plenty. Say nothing to the
others,' he added; and giving our horses the rein we rode into camp on a
gallop.</p>
<p>"Three days before Christmas we drove up this Wyoming stray and beefed
him. We hung the beef up overnight to harden in the frost, and the next
morning bright and early, we started for the stage-stand with a good pair
of ponies to a light wagon. We reached the widow's place about eleven
o'clock, and against her protests that she had no use for so much, we hung
up eight hundred pounds of as fine beef as you ever set your peepers on.
We wished her a merry Christmas, jumped into the wagon, clucked to the
ponies, and merely hit the high places getting away. When we got well out
of sight of the house—well, I've seen mule colts play and kid goats
cut up their antics; I've seen children that was frolicsome; but for a man
with gray hair on his head, old Bibleback Hunt that day was the happiest
mortal I ever saw. He talked to the horses; he sang songs; he played
Injun; and that Christmas was a merry one, for the debt was paid and our
little widow had beef to throw to the dogs. I never saw her again, but
wherever she is to-night, if my prayer counts, may God bless her!"</p>
<p>Early in the evening I had warned my boys that we would start on our
return at ten o'clock. The hour was nearly at hand, and in reply to my
inquiry if our portion of the beef had been secured, Jack Splann said that
he had cut off half a loin, a side of ribs, and enough steak for
breakfast. Splann and I tied the beef to our cantle-strings, and when we
returned to the group, Sponsilier was telling of the stampede of his herd
in the Panhandle about a month before. "But that run wasn't a circumstance
to one in which I figured once, and in broad daylight," concluded Dave. It
required no encouragement to get the story; all we had to do was to give
him time to collect his thoughts.</p>
<p>"Yes, it was in the summer of '73," he finally continued. "It was my first
trip over the trail, and I naturally fell into position at the drag end of
the herd. I was a green boy of about eighteen at the time, having never
before been fifty miles from the ranch where I was born. The herd belonged
to Major Hood, and our destination was Ellsworth, Kansas. In those days
they generally worked oxen to the chuck-wagons, as they were ready sale in
the upper country, and in good demand for breaking prairie. I reckon there
must have been a dozen yoke of work-steers in our herd that year, and they
were more trouble to me than all the balance of the cattle, for they were
slothful and sinfully lazy. My vocabulary of profanity was worn to a
frazzle before we were out a week, and those oxen didn't pay any more
attention to a rope or myself than to the buzzing of a gnat.</p>
<p>"There was one big roan ox, called Turk, which we worked to the wagon
occasionally, but in crossing the Arbuckle Mountains in the Indian
Territory, he got tender-footed. Another yoke was substituted, and in a
few days Turk was on his feet again. But he was a cunning rascal and had
learned to soldier, and while his feet were sore, I favored him with sandy
trails and gave him his own time. In fact, most of my duties were driving
that one ox, while the other boys handled the herd. When his feet got well—I
had toadied and babied him so—he was plum ruined. I begged the
foreman to put him back in the chuck team, but the cook kicked on account
of his well-known laziness, so Turk and I continued to adorn the rear of
the column. I reckon the foreman thought it better to have Turk and me
late than no dinner. I tried a hundred different schemes to instill
ambition and self-respect into that ox, but he was an old dog and
contented with his evil ways.</p>
<p>"Several weeks passed, and Turk and I became a standing joke with the
outfit. One morning I made the discovery that he was afraid of a slicker.
For just about a full half day, I had the best of him, and several times
he was out of sight in the main body of the herd. But he always dropped to
the rear, and finally the slicker lost its charm to move him. In fact he
rather enjoyed having me fan him with it—it seemed to cool him. It
was the middle of the afternoon, and Turk had dropped about a quarter-mile
to the rear, while I was riding along beside and throwing the slicker over
him like a blanket. I was letting him carry it, and he seemed to be
enjoying himself, switching his tail in appreciation, when the matted
brush of his tail noosed itself over one of the riveted buttons on the
slicker. The next switch brought the yellow 'fish' bumping on his heels,
and emitting a blood-curdling bellow, he curved his tail and started for
the herd. Just for a minute it tickled me to see old Turk getting such a
wiggle on him, but the next moment my mirth turned to seriousness, and I
tried to cut him off from the other cattle, but he beat me, bellowing
bloody murder. The slicker was sailing like a kite, and the rear cattle
took fright and began bawling as if they had struck a fresh scent of
blood. The scare flashed through the herd from rear to point, and hell
began popping right then and there. The air filled with dust and the earth
trembled with the running cattle. Not knowing which way to turn, I stayed
right where I was—in the rear. As the dust lifted, I followed up,
and about a mile ahead picked up my slicker, and shortly afterward found
old Turk, grazing contentedly. With every man in the saddle, that herd ran
seven miles and was only turned by the Cimarron River. It was nearly dark
when I and the roan ox overtook the cattle. Fortunately none of the
swing-men had seen the cause of the stampede, and I attributed it to fresh
blood, which the outfit believed. My verdant innocence saved my scalp that
time, but years afterward I nearly lost it when I admitted to my old
foreman what had caused the stampede that afternoon. But I was a trail
boss then and had learned my lesson."</p>
<p>The Rebel, who was encamped several miles up the creek, summoned his men,
and we all arose and scattered after our horses. There was quite a
cavalcade going our way, and as we halted within the light of the fires
for the different outfits to gather, Flood rode up, and calling Forrest,
said: "In the absence of any word from old man Don, we might as well all
pull out in the morning. More than likely we'll hear from him at Grinnell,
and until we reach the railroad, the Buford herds had better take the
lead. I'll drag along in the rear, and if there's another move made from
Dodge, you will have warning. Now, that's about all, except to give your
cattle plenty of time; don't hurry. S'long, fellows."</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2HCH0011" id="link2HCH0011"></SPAN></p>
<br/>
<h2> CHAPTER XI. ALL IN THE DAY'S WORK </h2>
<p>The next morning the herds moved out like brigades of an army on
dress-parade. Our front covered some six or seven miles, the Buford cattle
in the lead, while those intended for Indian delivery naturally fell into
position on flank and rear. My beeves had enjoyed a splendid rest during
the past week, and now easily took the lead in a steady walk, every herd
avoiding the trail until necessity compelled us to reenter it. The old
pathway was dusty and merely pointed the way, and until rain fell to
settle it, our intention was to give it a wide berth. As the morning wore
on and the herds drew farther and farther apart, except for the dim
dust-clouds of ten thousand trampling feet on a raw prairie, it would have
been difficult for us to establish each other's location. Several times
during the forenoon, when a swell of the plain afforded us a temporary
westward view, we caught glimpses of Forrest's cattle as they snailed
forward, fully five miles distant and barely noticeable under the low
sky-line. The Indian herds had given us a good start in the morning, and
towards evening as the mirages lifted, not a dust-signal was in sight,
save one far in our lead.</p>
<p>The month of June, so far, had been exceedingly droughty. The scarcity of
water on the plains between Dodge and Ogalalla was the dread of every
trail drover. The grass, on the other hand, had matured from the first
rank growth of early spring into a forage, rich in sustenance, from which
our beeves took on flesh and rounded into beauties. Lack of water being
the one drawback, long drives, not in miles but hours, became the order of
the day; from four in the morning to eight at night, even at an ox's pace,
leaves every landmark of the day far in the rear at nightfall. Thus for
the next few days we moved forward, the monotony of existence broken only
by the great variety of mirage, the glare of heat-waves, and the silent
signal in the sky of other voyageurs like ourselves. On reaching Pig
Boggy, nothing but pools greeted us, while the regular crossing was dry
and dusty and paved with cattle bones. My curiosity was strong enough to
cause me to revisit the old bridge which I had helped to build two seasons
before; though unused, it was still intact, a credit to the crude
engineering of Pete Slaughter. After leaving the valley of the Solomon,
the next running water was Pawnee Fork, where we overtook and passed six
thousand yearling heifers in two herds, sold the winter before by John
Blocker for delivery in Montana. The Northwest had not yet learned that
Texas was the natural breeding-ground for cattle, yet under favorable
conditions in both sections, the ranchman of the South could raise one
third more calves from an equal number of cows.</p>
<p>The weather continued hot and sultry. Several times storms hung on our
left for hours which we hoped would reach us, and at night the lightning
flickered in sheets, yet with the exception of cooling the air, availed us
nothing. But as we encamped one night on the divide before reaching the
Smoky River, a storm struck us that sent terror to our hearts. There were
men in my outfit, and others in Lovell's employ, who were from ten to
twenty years my senior, having spent almost their lifetime in the open,
who had never before witnessed such a night. The atmosphere seemed to be
overcharged with electricity, which played its pranks among us, neither
man nor beast being exempt. The storm struck the divide about two hours
after the cattle had been bedded, and from then until dawn every man was
in the saddle, the herd drifting fully three miles during the night. Such
keen flashes of lightning accompanied by instant thunder I had never
before witnessed, though the rainfall, after the first dash, was light in
quantity. Several times the rain ceased entirely, when the phosphorus,
like a prairie fire, appeared on every hand. Great sheets of it flickered
about, the cattle and saddle stock were soon covered, while every bit of
metal on our accoutrements was coated and twinkling with phosphorescent
light. My gauntlets were covered, and wherever I touched myself, it seemed
to smear and spread and refuse to wipe out. Several times we were able to
hold up and quiet the cattle, but along their backs flickered the ghostly
light, while across the herd, which occupied acres, it reminded one of the
burning lake in the regions infernal. As the night wore on, several
showers fell, accompanied by almost incessant bolts of lightning, but the
rainfall only added moisture to the ground and this acted like fuel in
reviving the phosphor. Several hours before dawn, great sheets of the
fiery elements chased each other across the northern sky, lighting up our
surroundings until one could have read ordinary print. The cattle stood
humped or took an occasional step forward, the men sat their horses,
sullen and morose, forming new resolutions for the future, in which trail
work was not included. But morning came at last, cool and cloudy, a slight
recompense for the heat which we had endured since leaving Dodge.</p>
<p>With the breaking of day, the herd was turned back on its course. For an
hour or more the cattle grazed freely, and as the sun broke through the
clouds, they dropped down like tired infantry on a march, and we allowed
them an hour's rest. We were still some three or four miles eastward of
the trail, and after breakfasting and changing mounts we roused the cattle
and started on an angle for the trail, expecting to intercept it before
noon. There was some settlement in the Smoky River Valley which must be
avoided, as in years past serious enmity had been engendered between
settlers and drovers in consequence of the ravages of Texas fever among
native cattle. I was riding on the left point, and when within a short
distance of the trail, one of the boys called my attention to a loose herd
of cattle, drifting south and fully two miles to the west of us. It was
certainly something unusual, and as every man of us scanned them, a lone
horseman was seen to ride across their front, and, turning them, continue
on for our herd. The situation was bewildering, as the natural course of
every herd was northward, but here was one apparently abandoned like a
water-logged ship at sea.</p>
<p>The messenger was a picture of despair. He proved to be the owner of the
abandoned cattle, and had come to us with an appeal for help. According to
his story, he was a Northern cowman and had purchased the cattle a few
days before in Dodge. He had bought the outfit complete, with the
understanding that the through help would continue in his service until
his range in Wyoming was reached. But it was a Mexican outfit, foreman and
all, and during the storm of the night before, one of the men had been
killed by lightning. The accident must have occurred near dawn, as the man
was not missed until daybreak, and like ours, his cattle had drifted with
the storm. Some time was lost in finding the body, and to add to the panic
that had already stricken the outfit, the shirt of the unfortunate vaquero
was burnt from the corpse. The horse had escaped scathless, though his
rider met death, while the housings were stripped from the saddle so that
it fell from the animal. The Mexican foreman and vaqueros had thrown their
hands in the air; steeped in superstition, they considered the loss of
their comrade a bad omen, and refused to go farther. The herd was as good
as abandoned unless we could lend a hand.</p>
<p>The appeal was not in vain. Detailing four of my men, and leaving Jack
Splann as segundo in charge of our cattle, I galloped away with the
stranger. As we rode the short distance between the two herds and I
mentally reviewed the situation, I could not help but think it was
fortunate for the alien outfit that their employer was a Northern cowman
instead of a Texan. Had the present owner been of the latter school, there
would have been more than one dead Mexican before a valuable herd would
have been abandoned over an unavoidable accident. I kept my thoughts to
myself, however, for the man had troubles enough, and on reaching his
drifting herd, we turned them back on their course. It was high noon when
we reached his wagon and found the Mexican outfit still keening over their
dead comrade. We pushed the cattle, a mixed herd of about twenty-five
hundred, well past the camp, and riding back, dismounted among the howling
vaqueros. There was not the semblance of sanity among them. The foreman,
who could speak some little English, at least his employer declared he
could, was carrying on like a madman, while a majority of the vaqueros
were playing a close second. The dead man had been carried in and was
lying under a tarpaulin in the shade of the wagon. Feeling that my boys
would stand behind me, and never offering to look at the corpse, I
inquired in Spanish of the vaqueros which one of the men was their
corporal. A heavy-set, bearded man was pointed out, and walking up to him,
with one hand I slapped him in the face and with the other relieved him of
a six-shooter. He staggered back, turned ashen pale, and before he could
recover from the surprise, in his own tongue I berated him as a worthless
cur for deserting his employer over an accident. Following up the
temporary advantage, I inquired for the cook and horse-wrangler, and
intimated clearly that there would be other dead Mexicans if the men were
not fed and the herd and saddle stock looked after; that they were not
worthy of the name of vaqueros if they were lax in a duty with which they
had been intrusted.</p>
<p>"But Pablo is dead," piped one of the vaqueros in defense.</p>
<p>"Yes, he is," said G—G Cederdall in Spanish, bristling up to the
vaquero who had volunteered the reply; "and we'll bury him and a
half-dozen more of you if necessary, but the cattle will not be abandoned—not
for a single hour. Pablo is dead, but he was no better than a hundred
other men who have lost their lives on this trail. If you are a lot of
locoed sheep-herders instead of vaqueros, why didn't you stay at home with
the children instead of starting out to do a man's work. Desert your
employer, will you? Not in a country where there is no chance to pick up
other men. Yes, Pablo is dead, and we'll bury him."</p>
<p>The aliens were disconcerted, and wilted. The owner picked up courage and
ordered the cook to prepare dinner. We loaned our horses to the wrangler
and another man, the remuda was brought in, and before we sat down to the
midday meal, every vaquero had a horse under saddle, while two of them had
ridden away to look after the grazing cattle. With order restored, we set
about systematically to lay away the unfortunate man. A detail of vaqueros
under Cederdall prepared a grave on the nearest knoll, and wrapping the
corpse in a tarpaulin, we buried him like a sailor at sea. Several
vaqueros were visibly affected at the graveside, and in order to pacify
them, I suggested that we unload the wagon of supplies and haul up a load
of rock from a near-by outcropping ledge. Pablo had fallen like a good
soldier at his post, I urged, and it was befitting that his comrades
should mark his last resting-place. To our agreeable surprise the corporal
hurrahed his men and the wagon was unloaded in a jiffy and dispatched
after a load of rock. On its return, we spent an hour in decorating the
mound, during which time lament was expressed for the future of Pablo's
soul. Knowing the almost universal faith of this alien race, as we stood
around the finished mound, Cederdall, who was Catholic born, called for
contributions to procure the absolution of the Church. The owner of the
cattle was the first to respond, and with the aid of my boys and myself,
augmented later by the vaqueros, a purse of over fifty dollars was raised
and placed in charge of the corporal, to be expended in a private mass on
their return to San Antonio. Meanwhile the herd and saddle stock had
started, and reloading the wagon, we cast a last glance at the little
mound which made a new landmark on the old trail.</p>
<p>The owner of the cattle was elated over the restoration of order. My
contempt for him, however, had not decreased; the old maxim of fools
rushing in where angels feared to tread had only been again exemplified.
The inferior races may lack in courage and leadership, but never in
cunning and craftiness. This alien outfit had detected some weakness in
the armor of their new employer, and when the emergency arose, were ready
to take advantage of the situation. Yet under an old patron, these same
men would never dare to mutiny or assert themselves. That there were
possible breakers ahead for this cowman there was no doubt; for every day
that those Mexicans traveled into a strange country, their Aztec blood
would yearn for their Southern home. And since the unforeseen could not be
guarded against, at the first opportunity I warned the stranger that it
was altogether too soon to shout. To his anxious inquiries I replied that
his very presence with the herd was a menace to its successful handling by
the Mexican outfit. He should throw all responsibility on the foreman, or
take charge himself, which was impossible now; for an outfit which will
sulk and mutiny once will do so again under less provocation. When my
curtain lecture was ended, the owner authorized me to call his outfit
together and give them such instructions as I saw fit.</p>
<p>We sighted our cattle but once during the afternoon. On locating the herd,
two of my boys left us to return, hearing the message that the rest of us
might not put in an appearance before morning. All during the evening, I
made it a point to cultivate the acquaintance of several vaqueros, and
learned the names of their master and rancho. Taking my cue from the
general information gathered, when we encamped for the night and all
hands, with the exception of those on herd, had finished catching horses,
I attracted their attention by returning the six-shooter taken from their
corporal at noontime. Commanding attention, in their mother tongue I
addressed myself to the Mexican foreman.</p>
<p>"Felipe Esquibil," said I, looking him boldly in the face, "you were
foreman of this herd from Zavalla County, Texas, to the Arkansaw River,
and brought your cattle through without loss or accident.</p>
<p>"The herd changed owners at Dodge, but with the understanding that you and
your vaqueros were to accompany the cattle to this gentleman's ranch in
the upper country. An accident happens, and because you are not in full
control, you shift the responsibility and play the baby act by wanting to
go home. Had the death of one of your men occurred below the river, and
while the herd was still the property of Don Dionisio of Rancho Los Olmus,
you would have lost your own life before abandoning your cattle. Now, with
the consent and approval of the new owner, you are again invested with
full charge of this herd until you arrive at the Platte River. A new
outfit will relieve you on reaching Ogalalla, and then you will be paid
your reckoning and all go home. In your immediate rear are five herds
belonging to my employer, and I have already sent warning to them of your
attempted desertion. A fortnight or less will find you relieved, and the
only safety in store for you is to go forward. Now your employer is going
to my camp for the night, and may not see you again before this herd
reaches the Platte. Remember, Don Felipe, that the opportunity is yours to
regain your prestige as a corporal—and you need it after to-day's
actions. What would Don Dionisio say if he knew the truth? And do you ever
expect to face your friends again at Los Olmus? From a trusted corporal
back to a sheep-shearer would be your reward—and justly."</p>
<p>Cederdall, Wolf, and myself shook hands with several vaqueros, and
mounting our horses we started for my camp, taking the stranger with us.
Only once did he offer any protest to going. "Very well, then," replied G—G,
unable to suppress his contempt, "go right back. I'll gamble that you
sheathe a knife before morning if you do. It strikes me you don't sabe
Mexicans very much."</p>
<p>Around the camp-fire that night, the day's work was reviewed. My rather
drastic treatment of the corporal was fully commented upon and approved by
the outfit, yet provoked an inquiry from the irrepressible Parent. Turning
to the questioner, Burl Van Vedder said in dove-like tones: "Yes, dear,
slapped him just to remind the varmint that his feet were on the earth,
and that pawing the air and keening didn't do any good. Remember, love,
there was the living to be fed, the dead to bury, and the work in hand
required every man to do his duty. Now was there anything else you'd like
to know?"</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2HCH0012" id="link2HCH0012"></SPAN></p>
<br/>
<h2> CHAPTER XII. MARSHALING THE FORCES </h2>
<p>Both herds had watered in the Smoky during the afternoon. The stranger's
cattle were not compelled to go down to the crossing, but found an easy
passage several miles above the regular ford. After leaving the river,
both herds were grazed out during the evening, and when darkness fell we
were not over three miles apart, one on either side of the trail. The
Wyoming cowman spent a restless night, and early the next morning rode to
the nearest elevation which would give him a view of his cattle. Within an
hour after sun-up he returned, elated over the fact that his herd was far
in the lead of ours, camp being already broken, while we were only
breakfasting. Matters were working out just as I expected. The mixed herd
under the Mexican corporal, by moving early and late, could keep the lead
of our beeves, and with the abundance of time at my disposal we were in no
hurry. The Kansas Pacific Railroad was but a few days' drive ahead, and I
advised our guest to take the train around to Ogalalla and have a new
outfit all ready to relieve the aliens immediately on their arrival.
Promising to take the matter under consideration, he said nothing further
for several days, his cattle in the mean time keeping a lead of from five
to ten miles.</p>
<p>The trail crossed the railroad at a switch east of Grinnell. I was
naturally expecting some word from Don Lovell, and it was my intention to
send one of the boys into that station to inquire for mail. There was a
hostelry at Grinnell, several stores and a livery stable, all dying an
easy death from the blight of the arid plain, the town profiting little or
nothing from the cattle trade. But when within a half-day's drive of the
railway, on overtaking the herd after dinner, there was old man Don
talking to the boys on herd. The cattle were lying down, and rather than
disturb them, he patiently bided his time until they had rested and arose
to resume their journey. The old man was feeling in fine spirits,
something unusual, and declined my urgent invitation to go back to the
wagon and have dinner. I noticed that he was using his own saddle, though
riding a livery horse, and in the mutual inquiries which were exchanged,
learned that he had arrived at Grinnell but a few days before. He had left
Camp Supply immediately after Forrest and Sponsilier passed that point,
and until Siringo came in with his report, he had spent the time about
detective headquarters in Kansas City. From intimate friends in Dodge, he
had obtained the full particulars of the attempted but unsuccessful move
of The Western Supply Company to take possession of his two herds. In fact
there was very little that I could enlighten him on, except the condition
of the cattle, and they spoke for themselves, their glossy coats shining
with the richness of silk. On the other hand, my employer opened like a
book.</p>
<p>"Tom, I think we're past the worst of it," said he. "Those Dodge people
are just a trifle too officious to suit me, but Ogalalla is a cow-town
after my own heart. They're a law unto themselves up there, and a cowman
stands some show—a good one against thieves. Ogalalla is the seat of
an organized county, and the town has officers, it's true, but they've got
sense enough to know which side their bread's buttered on; and a cowman
who's on the square has nothing to fear in that town. Yes, the whole gang,
Tolleston and all, are right up here at Ogalalla now; bought a herd this
week, so I hear, and expect to take two of these away from us the moment
we enter Keith County. Well, they may; I've seen bad men before take a
town, but it was only a question of time until the plain citizens retook
it. They may try to bluff us, but if they do, we'll meet them a little
over halfway. Which one of your boys was it that licked Archie? I want to
thank him until such a time as I can reward him better."</p>
<p>The herd was moving out, and as Seay was working in the swing on the
opposite side, we allowed the cattle to trail past, and then rode round
and overtook him. The two had never met before, but old man Don warmed
towards Dorg, who recited his experience in such an inimitable manner that
our employer rocked in his saddle in spasms of laughter. Leaving the two
together, I rode on ahead to look out the water, and when the herd came up
near the middle of the afternoon, they were still inseparable. The
watering over, we camped for the night several miles south of the
railroad, the mixed herd having crossed it about noon. My guest of the
past few days had come to a point requiring a decision and was in a
quandary to know what to do. But when the situation had been thoroughly
reviewed between Mr. Lovell and the Wyoming man, my advice was indorsed,—to
trust implicitly to his corporal, and be ready to relieve the outfit at
the Platte. Saddles were accordingly shifted, and the stranger, after
professing a profusion of thanks, rode away on the livery horse by which
my employer had arrived. Once the man was well out of hearing, the old
trail drover turned to my outfit and said:</p>
<p>"Boys, there goes a warning that the days of the trail are numbered. To
make a success of any business, a little common sense is necessary. Nine
tenths of the investing in cattle to-day in the Northwest is being done by
inexperienced men. No other line of business could prosper in such
incompetent hands, and it's foolish to think that cattle companies and
individuals, nearly all tenderfeet at the business, can succeed. They may
for a time,—there are accidents in every calling,—but when the
tide turns, there won't be one man or company in ten survive. I only wish
they would, as it means life and expansion for the cattle interests in
Texas. As long as the boom continues, and foreigners and tenderfeet pour
their money in, the business will look prosperous. Why, even the business
men are selling out their stores and going into cattle. But there's a day
of reckoning ahead, and there's many a cowman in this Northwest country
who will never see his money again. Now the government demand is a healthy
one: it needs the cattle for Indian and military purposes; but this crazy
investment, especially in she stuff, I wouldn't risk a dollar in it."</p>
<p>During the conversation that evening, I was delighted to learn that my
employer expected to accompany the herds overland to Ogalalla. There was
nothing pressing elsewhere, and as all the other outfits were within a
short day's ride in the rear, he could choose his abode. He was too good a
cowman to interfere with the management of cattle, and the pleasure of his
company, when in good humor, was to be desired. The next morning a horse
was furnished him from our extras, and after seeing us safely across the
railroad track, he turned back to meet Forrest or Sponsilier. This was the
last we saw of him until after crossing into Nebraska. In the mean time my
boys kept an eye on the Mexican outfit in our front, scarcely a day
passing but what we sighted them either in person or by signal. Once they
dropped back opposite us on the western side of the trail, when Cedardall,
under the pretense of hunting lost horses, visited their camp, finding
them contented and enjoying a lay-over. They were impatient to know the
distance to the Rio Platte, and G—G assured them that within a week
they would see its muddy waters and be relieved. Thus encouraged they held
the lead, but several times vaqueros dropped back to make inquiries of
drives and the water. The route was passable, with a short dry drive from
the head of Stinking Water across to the Platte River, of which they were
fully advised. Keeping them in sight, we trailed along leisurely, and as
we went down the northern slope of the divide approaching the Republican
River, we were overtaken at noon by Don Lovell and Dave Sponsilier.</p>
<p>"Quirk," said the old man, as the two dismounted, "I was just telling Dave
that twenty years ago this summer I carried a musket with Sherman in his
march to the sea. And here we are to-day, driving beef to feed the army in
the West. But that's neither here nor there under the present programme.
Jim Flood and I have talked matters over pretty thoroughly, and have
decided to switch the foremen on the 'Open A' and 'Drooping T' cattle
until after Ogalalla is passed. From their actions at Dodge, it is
probable that they will try and arrest the foreman of those two herds as
accessory under some charge or other. By shifting the foremen, even if the
ones in charge are detained, we will gain time and be able to push the
Buford cattle across the North Platte. The chances are that they will
prefer some charges against me, and if they do, if necessary, we will all
go to the lock-up together. They may have spotters ahead here on the
Republican; Dave will take charge of your 'Open A's' at once, and you will
drop back and follow up with his cattle. For the time being and to every
stranger, you two will exchange names. The Rebel is in charge of Forrest's
cattle now, and Quince will drop back with Paul's herd. Dave, here, gave
me the slip on crossing the Texas Pacific in the lower country, but when
we reach the Union Pacific, I want to know where he is, even if in jail.
And I may be right there with him, but we'll live high, for I've got a lot
of their money."</p>
<p>Sponsilier reported his herd on the same side of the trail and about ten
miles to our rear. I had no objection to the change, for those arid plains
were still to be preferred to the lock-up in Ogalalla. My only regret was
in temporarily losing my mount; but as Dave's horses were nearly as good,
no objection was urged, and promising, in case either landed in jail, to
send flowers, I turned back, leaving my employer with the lead herd.
Before starting, I learned that the "Drooping T" cattle were in advance of
Sponsilier's, and as I soldiered along on my way back, rode several miles
out of my way to console my old bunkie, The Rebel. He took my chaffing
good-naturedly and assured me that his gray hairs were a badge of
innocence which would excuse him on any charge. Turning, I rode back with
him over a mile, this being my first opportunity of seeing Forrest's
beeves. The steers were large and rangy, extremely uniform in ages and
weight, and in general relieved me of considerable conceit that I had the
best herd among the Buford cattle. With my vanity eased, I continued my
journey and reached Sponsilier's beeves while they were watering. Again a
surprise was in store for me, as the latter herd had, if any, the edge
over the other two, while "The Apple" was by all odds the prettiest road
brand I had ever seen. I asked the acting segundo, a lad named Tupps, who
cut the cattle when receiving; light was thrown on the situation by his
reply.</p>
<p>"Old man Don joined the outfit the day we reached Uvalde," said he, "and
until we began receiving, he poured it into our foreman that this year the
cattle had to be something extra—muy escogido, as the Mexicans say.
Well, the result was that Sponsilier went to work with ideas pitched
rather high. But in the first bunch received, the old man cut a pretty
little four-year-old, fully a hundred pounds too light. Dave and Mr.
Lovell had a set-to over the beef, the old man refusing to cut him back,
but he rode out of the herd and never again offered to interfere. Forrest
was present, and at dinner that day old man Don admitted that he was too
easy when receiving. Sponsilier and Forrest did the trimming afterward,
and that is the secret of these two herds being so uniform."</p>
<p>A general halt was called at the head of Stinking Water. We were then
within forty miles of Ogalalla, and a day's drive would put us within the
jurisdiction of Keith County. Some time was lost at this last water,
waiting for the rear herds to arrive, as it was the intention to place the
"Open A" and "Drooping T" cattle at the rear in crossing this dry belt. At
the ford on the Republican, a number of strangers were noticed, two of
whom rode a mile or more with me, and innocently asked numerous but
leading questions. I frankly answered every inquiry, and truthfully, with
the exception of the names of the lead foreman and my own. Direct, it was
only sixty miles from the crossing on the Republican to Ogalalla, an easy
night's ride, and I was conscious that our whereabouts would be known at
the latter place the next morning. For several days before starting across
this arid stretch, we had watered at ten o'clock in the morning, so when
Flood and Forrest came up, mine being the third herd to reach the last
water, I was all ready to pull out. But old man Don counseled another
day's lie-over, as it would be a sore trial for the herds under a July
sun, and for a full day twenty thousand beeves grazed in sight of each
other on the mesas surrounding the head of Stinking Water. All the herds
were aroused with the dawn, and after a few hours' sun on the cattle, the
Indian beeves were turned onto the water and held until the middle of the
forenoon, when the start was made for the Platte and Ogalalla.</p>
<p>I led out with "The Apple" cattle, throwing onto the trail for the first
ten miles, which put me well in advance of Bob Quirk and Forrest, who were
in my immediate rear. A well-known divide marked the halfway between the
two waters, and I was determined to camp on it that night. It was fully
nine o'clock when we reached it, Don Lovell in the mean time having
overtaken us. This watershed was also recognized as the line of Keith
County, an organized community, and the next morning expectation ran high
as to what the day would bring forth. Lovell insisted on staying with the
lead herd, and pressing him in as horse-wrangler, I sent him in the lead
with the remuda and wagon, while Levering fell into the swing with the
trailing cattle. A breakfast halt was made fully seven miles from the
bed-ground, a change of mounts, and then up divide, across mesa, and down
slope at the foot of which ran the Platte. Meanwhile several wayfaring men
were met, but in order to avoid our dust, they took the right or unbranded
side of our herd on meeting, and passed on their way without inquiry. Near
noon a party of six men, driving a number of loose mounts and a
pack-horse, were met, who also took the windward side. Our dragmen learned
that they were on their way to Dodge to receive a herd of range horses.
But when about halfway down the slope towards the river, two mounted men
were seen to halt the remuda and wagon for a minute, and then continue on
southward. Billy Tupps was on the left point, myself next in the swing;
and as the two horsemen turned out on the branded side, their identity was
suspected. In reply to some inquiry, Tupps jerked his thumb over his
shoulder as much as to say, "Next man." I turned out and met the
strangers, who had already noted the road brand, and politely answered
every question. One of the two offered me a cigar, and after lighting it,
I did remember hearing one of my boys say that among the herds lying over
on the head of Stinking Water was an "Open A" and "Drooping T," but I was
unable to recall the owner's or foremen's names. Complimenting me on the
condition of my beeves, and assuring me that I would have time to water my
herd and reach the mesa beyond Ogalalla, they passed on down the column of
cattle.</p>
<p>I had given the cook an order on an outfitting house for new supplies,
saying I would call or send a draft in the morning. A new bridge had been
built across the Platte opposite the town, and when nearing the river, the
commissary turned off the trail for it, but the horse-wrangler for the day
gave the bridge a wide berth and crossed the stream a mile below the
village. The width of the river was a decided advantage in watering a
thirsty herd, as it gave the cattle room to thrash around, filling its
broad bed for fully a half mile. Fortunately there were few spectators,
but I kept my eye on the lookout for a certain faction, being well
disguised with dust and dirt and a month's growth of beard. As we pushed
out of the river and were crossing the tracks below the railroad yards,
two other herds were sighted coming down to the water, their remudas
having forded above and below our cattle. On scaling the bluffs, we could
see the trail south of the Platte on which arose a great column of dust.
Lovell was waiting with the saddle stock in the hills beyond the town, and
on striking the first good grass, the cattle fell to grazing while we
halted to await the arrival of the wagon. The sun was still several hours
high, and while waiting for our commissary to come up, my employer and
myself rode to the nearest point of observation to reconnoitre the rear.
Beneath us lay the hamlet; but our eyes were concentrated beyond the
narrow Platte valley on a dust-cloud which hung midway down the farther
slope. As we watched, an occasional breeze wafted the dust aside, and the
sinuous outline of a herd creeping forward greeted our vision. Below the
town were two other herds, distinctly separate and filling the river for
over a mile with a surging mass of animals, while in every direction
cattle dotted the plain and valley. Turning aside from the panorama before
us, my employer said:</p>
<p>"Tom, you will have time to graze out a few miles and camp to the left of
the trail. I'll stay here and hurry your wagon forward, and wait for Bob
and Quince. That lead herd beyond the river is bound to be Jim's, and he's
due to camp on this mesa to-night, so these outfits must give him room. If
Dave and Paul are still free to act, they'll know enough to water and camp
on the south side of the Platte. I'll stay at Flood's wagon to-night, and
you had better send a couple of your boys into town and let them nose
around. They'll meet lads from the 'Open A' and 'Drooping T' outfits; and
I'll send Jim and Bob in, and by midnight we'll have a report of what's
been done. If any one but an officer takes possession of those two herds,
it'll put us to the trouble of retaking them. And I think I've got men
enough here to do it."</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2HCH0013" id="link2HCH0013"></SPAN></p>
<br/>
<h2> CHAPTER XIII. JUSTICE IN THE SADDLE </h2>
<p>It was an hour after the usual time when we bedded down the cattle. The
wagon had overtaken us about sunset, and the cook's fire piloted us into a
camp fully two miles to the right of the trail. A change of horses was
awaiting us, and after a hasty supper Tupps detailed two young fellows to
visit Ogalalla. It required no urging; I outlined clearly what was
expected of their mission, requesting them to return by the way of Flood's
wagon, and to receive any orders which my employer might see fit to send.
The horse-wrangler was pressed in to stand the guard of one of the absent
lads on the second watch, and I agreed to take the other, which fell in
the third. The boys had not yet returned when our guard was called, but
did so shortly afterward, one of them hunting me up on night-herd.</p>
<p>"Well," said he, turning his horse and circling with me, "we caught onto
everything that was adrift. The Rebel and Sponsilier were both in town, in
charge of two deputies. Flood and your brother went in with us, and with
the lads from the other outfits, including those across the river, there
must have been twenty-five of Lovell's men in town. I noticed that Dave
and The Rebel were still wearing their six-shooters, while among the boys
the arrests were looked upon as quite a joke. The two deputies had all
kinds of money, and wouldn't allow no one but themselves to spend a cent.
The biggest one of the two—the one who gave you the cigar—would
say to my boss: 'Sponsilier, you're a trail foreman from Texas—one
of Don Lovell's boss men—but you're under arrest; your cattle are in
my possession this very minute. You understand that, don't you? Very well,
then; everybody come up and have a drink on the sheriff's office.' That
was about the talk in every saloon and dance-hall visited. But when we
proposed starting back to camp, about midnight, the big deputy said to
Flood: 'I want you to tell Colonel Lovell that I hold a warrant for his
arrest; urge him not to put me to the trouble of coming out after him. If
he had identified himself to me this afternoon, he could have slept on a
goose-hair bed to-night instead of out there on the mesa, on the cold
ground. His reputation in this town would entitle him to three meals a
day, even if he was under arrest. Now, we'll have one more, and tell the
damned old rascal that I'll expect him in the morning.'"</p>
<p>We rode out the watch together. On returning to Flood's camp, they had
found Don Lovell awake. The old man was pleased with the report, but sent
me no special word except to exercise my own judgment. The cattle were
tired after their long tramp of the day before, the outfit were saddle
weary, and the first rays of the rising sun flooded the mesa before men or
animals offered to arise. But the duties of another day commanded us anew,
and with the cook calling us, we rose to meet them. I was favorably
impressed with Tupps as a segundo, and after breakfast suggested that he
graze the cattle over to the North Platte, cross it, and make a permanent
camp. This was agreed to, half the men were excused for the day, and after
designating, beyond the river, a clump of cottonwoods where the wagon
would be found, seven of us turned and rode back for Ogalalla. With picked
mounts under us, we avoided the other cattle which could be seen grazing
northward, and when fully halfway to town, there before us on the brink of
the mesa loomed up the lead of a herd. I soon recognized Jack Splann on
the point, and taking a wide circle, dropped in behind him, the column
stretching back a mile and coming up the bluffs, forty abreast like an
army in loose marching order. I was proud of those "Open A's;" they were
my first herd, and though in a hurry to reach town, I turned and rode back
with them for fully a mile.</p>
<p>Splann was acting under orders from Flood, who had met him at the ford
that morning. If the cattle were in the possession of any deputy sheriff,
they had failed to notify Jack, and the latter had already started for the
North Platte of his own accord. The "Drooping T" cattle were in the
immediate rear under Forrest's segundo, and Splann urged me to accompany
him that forenoon, saying: "From what the boys said this morning, Dave and
Paul will not be given a hearing until two o'clock this afternoon. I can
graze beyond the North Fork by that time, and then we'll all go back
together. Flood's right behind here with the 'Drooping T's,' and I think
it's his intention to go all the way to the river. Drop back and see him."</p>
<p>The boys who were with me never halted, but had ridden on towards town.
When the second herd began the ascent of the mesa, I left Splann and
turned back, waiting on the brink for its arrival. As it would take the
lead cattle some time to reach me, I dismounted, resting in the shade of
my horse. But my rest was brief, for the clattering hoofs of a cavalcade
of horsemen were approaching, and as I arose, Quince Forrest and Bob Quirk
with a dozen or more men dashed up and halted. As their herds were
intended for the Crow and Fort Washakie agencies, they would naturally
follow up the south side of the North Platte, and an hour or two of
grazing would put them in camp. The Buford cattle, as well as Flood's
herd, were due to cross this North Fork of the mother Platte within ten
miles of Ogalalla, their respective routes thenceforth being north and
northeast. Forrest, like myself, was somewhat leary of entering the town,
and my brother and the boys passed on shortly, leaving Quince behind. We
discussed every possible phase of what might happen in case we were
recognized, which was almost certain if Tolleston or the Dodge buyers were
encountered. But an overweening hunger to get into Ogalalla was dominant
in us, and under the excuse of settling for our supplies, after the herd
passed, we remounted our horses, Flood joining us, and rode for the
hamlet.</p>
<p>There was little external and no moral change in the town. Several new
saloons had opened, and in anticipation of the large drive that year, the
Dew-Drop-In dance-hall had been enlarged, and employed three shifts of
bartenders. A stage had been added with the new addition, and a special
importation of ladies had been brought out from Omaha for the season. I
use the term LADIES advisedly, for in my presence one of the proprietors,
with marked courtesy, said to an Eastern stranger, "Oh, no, you need no
introduction. My wife is the only woman in town; all the balance are
ladies." Beyond a shave and a hair-cut, Forrest and I fought shy of public
places. But after the supplies were settled for, and some new clothing was
secured, we chambered a few drinks and swaggered about with considerable
ado. My bill of supplies amounted to one hundred and twenty-six dollars,
and when, without a word, I drew a draft for the amount, the proprietor of
the outfitting store, as a pelon, made me a present of two fine silk
handkerchiefs.</p>
<p>Forrest was treated likewise, and having invested ourselves in white
shirts, with flaming red ties, we used the new handkerchiefs to otherwise
decorate our persons. We had both chosen the brightest colors, and with
these knotted about our necks, dangling from pistol-pockets, or protruding
from ruffled shirt fronts, our own mothers would scarcely have known us.
Jim Flood, whom we met casually on a back street, stopped, and after
circling us once, said, "Now if you fellows just keep perfectly sober,
your disguise will be complete."</p>
<p>Meanwhile Don Lovell had reported at an early hour to the sheriff's
office. The legal profession was represented in Ogalalla by several firms,
criminal practice being their specialty; but fortunately Mike Sutton, an
attorney of Dodge, had arrived in town the day before on a legal errand
for another trail drover. Sutton was a frontier advocate, alike popular
with the Texas element and the gambling fraternity, having achieved
laurels in his home town as a criminal lawyer. Mike was born on the little
green isle beyond the sea, and, gifted with the Celtic wit, was also in
logic clear as the tones of a bell, while his insight into human motives
was almost superhuman. Lovell had had occasion in other years to rely on
Sutton's counsel, and now would listen to no refusal of his services. As
it turned out, the lawyer's mission in Ogalalla was so closely in sympathy
with Lovell's trouble that they naturally strengthened each other. The
highest tribunal of justice in Ogalalla was the county court, the judge of
which also ran the stock-yards during the shipping season, and was banker
for two monte games at the Lone Star saloon. He enjoyed the reputation of
being an honest, fearless jurist, and supported by a growing civic pride,
his decisions gave satisfaction. A sense of crude equity governed his
rulings, and as one of the citizens remarked, "Whatever the judge said,
went." It should be remembered that this was in '84, but had a similar
trouble occurred five years earlier, it is likely that Judge Colt would
have figured in the preliminaries, and the coroner might have been called
on to impanel a jury. But the rudiments of civilization were sweeping
westward, and Ogalalla was nerved to the importance of the occasion; for
that very afternoon a hearing was to be given for the possession of two
herds of cattle, valued at over a quarter-million dollars.</p>
<p>The representatives of The Western Supply Company were quartered in the
largest hotel in town, but seldom appeared on the streets. They had
employed a firm of local attorneys, consisting of an old and a young man,
both of whom evidently believed in the justice of their client's cause.
All the cattle-hands in Lovell's employ were anxious to get a glimpse of
Tolleston, many of them patronizing the bar and table of the same
hostelry, but their efforts were futile until the hour arrived for the
hearing. They probably have a new court-house in Ogalalla now, but at the
date of this chronicle the building which served as a temple of justice
was poorly proportioned, its height being entirely out of relation to its
width. It was a two-story affair, the lower floor being used for county
offices, the upper one as the court-room. A long stairway ran up the
outside of the building, landing on a gallery in front, from which the
sheriff announced the sitting of the honorable court of Keith County. At
home in Texas, lawsuits were so rare that though I was a grown man, the
novelty of this one absorbed me. Quite a large crowd had gathered in
advance of the hour, and while awaiting the arrival of Judge Mulqueen, a
contingent of fifteen men from the two herds in question rode up and
halted in front of the court-house. Forrest and I were lying low, not
caring to be seen, when the three plaintiffs, the two local attorneys, and
Tolleston put in an appearance. The cavalcade had not yet dismounted, and
when Dorg Seay caught sight of Tolleston, he stood up in his stirrups and
sang out, "Hello there, Archibald! my old college chum, how goes it?"</p>
<p>Judge Mulqueen had evidently dressed for the occasion, for with the
exception of the plaintiffs, he was the only man in the court-room who
wore a coat. The afternoon was a sultry one; in that first bottom of the
Platte there was scarcely a breath of air, and collars wilted limp as
rags. Neither map nor chart graced the unplastered walls, the unpainted
furniture of the room was sadly in need of repair, while a musty odor
permeated the room. Outside the railing the seating capacity of the
court-room was rather small, rough, bare planks serving for seats, but the
spectators gladly stood along the sides and rear, eager to catch every
word, as they silently mopped the sweat which oozed alike from citizen and
cattleman. Forrest and I were concealed in the rear, which was packed with
Lovell's boys, when the judge walked in and court opened for the hearing.
Judge Mulqueen requested counsel on either side to be as brief and direct
as possible, both in their pleadings and testimony, adding: "If they reach
the stock-yards in time, I may have to load out a train of feeders this
evening. We'll bed the cars, anyhow." Turning to the sheriff, he
continued: "Frank, if you happen outside, keep an eye up the river; those
Lincoln feeders made a deal yesterday for five hundred three-year-olds.—Read
your complaint."</p>
<p>The legal document was read with great fervor and energy by the younger of
the two local lawyers. In the main it reviewed the situation correctly,
every point, however, being made subservient to their object,—the
possession of the cattle. The plaintiffs contended that they were the
innocent holders of the original contract between the government and The
Western Supply Company, properly assigned; that they had purchased these
two herds in question, had paid earnest-money to the amount of sixty-five
thousand dollars on the same, and concluded by petitioning the court for
possession. Sutton arose, counseled a moment with Lovell, and borrowing a
chew of tobacco from Sponsilier, leisurely addressed the court.</p>
<p>"I shall not trouble your honor by reading our reply in full, but briefly
state its contents," said he, in substance. "We admit that the herds in
question, which have been correctly described by road brands and ages, are
the property of my client. We further admit that the two trail foremen
here under arrest as accessories were acting under the orders of their
employer, who assumes all responsibility for their acts, and in our
pleadings we ask this honorable court to discharge them from further
detention. The earnest-money, said to have been paid on these herds, is
correct to a cent, and we admit having the amount in our possession. But,"
and the little advocate's voice rose, rich in its Irish brogue, "we deny
any assignment of the original contract. The Western Supply Company is a
corporation name, a shield and fence of thieves. The plaintiffs here can
claim no assignment, because they themselves constitute the company. It
has been decided that a man cannot steal his own money, neither can he
assign from himself to himself. We shall prove by a credible witness that
The Western Supply Company is but another name for John C. Fields, Oliver
Radcliff, and the portly gentleman who was known a year ago as 'Honest'
John Griscom, one of his many aliases. If to these names you add a few
moneyed confederates, you have The Western Supply Company, one and the
same. We shall also prove that for years past these same gentlemen have
belonged to a ring, all brokers in government contracts, and frequently
finding it necessary to use assumed names, generally that of a
corporation."</p>
<p>Scanning the document in his hand, Sutton continued: "Our motive in
selling and accepting money on these herds in Dodge demands a word of
explanation. The original contract calls for five million pounds of beef
on foot to be delivered at Fort Buford. My client is a sub-contractor
under that award. There are times, your honor, when it becomes necessary
to resort to questionable means to attain an end. This is one of them.
Within a week after my client had given bonds for the fulfillment of his
contract, he made the discovery that he was dealing with a double-faced
set of scoundrels. From that day until the present moment, secret-service
men have shadowed every action of the plaintiffs. My client has
anticipated their every move. When beeves broke in price from five to
seven dollars a head, Honest John, here, made his boasts in Washington
City over a champagne supper that he and his associates would clear one
hundred thousand dollars on their Buford contract. Let us reason together
how this could be done. The Western Supply Company refused, even when
offered a bonus, to assign their contract to my client. But they were
perfectly willing to transfer it, from themselves as a corporation, to
themselves as individuals, even though they had previously given Don
Lovell a subcontract for the delivery of the bees. The original award was
made seven months ago, and the depreciation in cattle since is the secret
of why the frog eat the cabbage. My client is under the necessity of
tendering his cattle on the day of delivery, and proposes to hold this
earnest-money to indemnify himself in case of an adverse decision at Fort
Buford. It is the only thing he can do, as The Western Supply Company is
execution proof, its assets consisting of some stud-horse office furniture
and a corporate seal. On the other hand, Don Lovell is rated at half a
million, mostly in pasture lands; is a citizen of Medina County, Texas,
and if these gentlemen have any grievance, let them go there and sue him.
A judgment against my client is good. Now, your honor, you have our side
of the question. To be brief, shall these old Wisinsteins come out here
from Washington City and dispossess any man of his property? There is but
one answer—not in the Republic of Keith."</p>
<p>All three of the plaintiffs took the stand, their testimony supporting the
complaint, Lovell's attorney refusing even to cross-examine any one of
them. When they rested their case Sutton arose, and scanning the audience
for some time, inquired, "Is Jim Reed there?" In response, a tall,
one-armed man worked his way from the outer gallery through the crowd and
advanced to the rail. I knew Reed by sight only, my middle brother having
made several trips with his trail cattle, but he was known to every one by
reputation. He had lost an arm in the Confederate service, and was
recognized by the gambling fraternity as the gamest man among all the
trail drovers, while every cowman from the Rio Grande to the Yellowstone
knew him as a poker-player. Reed was asked to take the stand, and when
questioned if he knew either of the plaintiffs, said:</p>
<p>"Yes, I know that fat gentleman, and I'm powerful glad to meet up with him
again," replied the witness, designating Honest John. "That man is so
crooked that he can't sleep in a bed, and it's one of the wonders of this
country that he hasn't stretched hemp before this. I made his acquaintance
as manager of The Federal Supply Company, and delivered three thousand
cows to him at the Washita Indian Agency last fall. In the final
settlement, he drew on three different banks, and one draft of
twenty-eight thousand dollars came back, indorsed, DRAWEE UNKNOWN. I had
other herds on the trail to look after, and it was a month before I found
out that the check was bogus, by which time Honest John had sailed for
Europe. There was nothing could be done but put my claim into a judgment
and lay for him. But I've got a grapevine twist on him now, for no sooner
did he buy a herd here last week than Mr. Sutton transferred the judgment
to this jurisdiction, and his cattle will be attached this afternoon. I've
been on his trail for nearly a year, but he'll come to me now, and before
he can move his beeves out of this county, the last cent must come, with
interest, attorney's fees, detective bills, and remuneration for my own
time and trouble. That's the reason that I'm so glad to meet him. Judge,
I've gone to the trouble and expense to get his record for the last ten
years. He's so snaky he sheds his name yearly, shifting for a nickname
from Honest John to The Quaker. In '80 he and his associates did business
under the name of The Army & Sutler Supply Company, and I know of two
judgments that can be bought very reasonable against that corporation. His
record would convince any one that he despises to make an honest dollar."</p>
<p>The older of the two attorneys for the plaintiffs asked a few questions,
but the replies were so unsatisfactory to their side, that they soon
passed the witness. During the cross-questioning, however, the sheriff had
approached the judge and whispered something to his honor. As there were
no further witnesses to be examined, the local attorneys insisted on
arguing the case, but Judge Mulqueen frowned them down, saying:</p>
<p>"This court sees no occasion for any argument in the present case. You
might spout until you were black in the face and it wouldn't change my
opinion any; besides I've got twenty cars to send and a train of cattle to
load out this evening. This court refuses to interfere with the herds in
question, at present the property of and in possession of Don Lovell, who,
together with his men, are discharged from custody. If you're in town
to-night, Mr. Reed, drop into the Lone Star. Couple of nice monte games
running there; hundred-dollar limit, and if you feel lucky, there's a nice
bank roll behind them. Adjourn court, Mr. Sheriff."</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2HCH0014" id="link2HCH0014"></SPAN></p>
<br/>
<h2> CHAPTER XIV. TURNING THE TABLES </h2>
<p>"Keep away from me, you common cow-hands," said Sponsilier, as a group of
us waited for him at the foot of the court-house stairs. But Dave's
gravity soon turned to a smile as he continued: "Did you fellows notice
The Rebel and me sitting inside the rail among all the big augers? Paul,
was it a dream, or did we sleep in a bed last night and have a sure-enough
pillow under our heads? My memory is kind of hazy to-day, but I remember
the drinks and the cigars all right, and saying to some one that this luck
was too good to last. And here we are turned out in the cold world again,
our fun all over, and now must go back to those measly cattle. But it's
just what I expected."</p>
<p>The crowd dispersed quietly, though the sheriff took the precaution to
accompany the plaintiffs and Tolleston back to their hotel. The absence of
the two deputies whom we had met the day before was explained by the
testimony of the one-armed cowman. When the two drovers came downstairs,
they were talking very confidentially together, and on my employer
noticing the large number of his men present, he gave orders for them to
meet him at once at the White Elephant saloon. Those who had horses at
hand mounted and dashed down the street, while the rest of us took it
leisurely around to the appointed rendezvous, some three blocks distant.
While on the way, I learned from The Rebel that the cattle on which the
attachment was to be made that afternoon were then being held well up the
North Fork. Sheriff Phillips joined us shortly after we entered the
saloon, and informed my employer and Mr. Reed that the firm of Field,
Radcliff & Co. had declared war. They had even denounced him and the
sheriff's office as being in collusion against them, and had dispatched
Tolleston with orders to refuse service.</p>
<p>"Let them get on the prod all they want to," said Don Lovell to Reed and
the sheriff. "I've got ninety men here, and you fellows are welcome to
half of them, even if I have to go out and stand a watch on night-herd
myself. Reed, we can't afford to have our business ruined by such a set of
scoundrels, and we might as well fight it out here and now. Look at the
situation I'm in. A hundred thousand dollars wouldn't indemnify me in
having my cattle refused as late as the middle of September at Fort
Buford. And believing that I will be turned down, under my contract, so
Sutton says, I must tender my beeves on the appointed day of delivery,
which will absolve my bondsmen and me from all liability. A man can't
trifle with the government—the cattle must be there. Now in my case,
Jim, what would you do?"</p>
<p>"That's a hard question, Don. You see we're strangers up in this Northwest
country. Now, if it was home in Texas, there would be only one thing to
do. Of course I'm no longer handy with a shotgun, but you've got two good
arms."</p>
<p>"Well, gentlemen," said the sheriff, "you must excuse me for interrupting,
but if my deputies are to take possession of that herd this afternoon, I
must saddle up and go to the front. If Honest John and associates try to
stand up any bluffs on my office, they'll only run on the rope once. I'm
much obliged to you, Mr. Lovell, for the assurance of any help I may need,
for it's quite likely that I may have to call upon you. If a ring of
government speculators can come out here and refuse service, or dictate to
my office, then old Keith County is certainly on the verge of decadence.
Now, I'll be all ready to start for the North Fork in fifteen minutes, and
I'd admire to have you all go along."</p>
<p>Lovell and Reed both expressed a willingness to accompany the sheriff.
Phillips thanked them and nodded to the force behind the mahogany, who
dexterously slid the glasses up and down the bar, and politely inquired of
the double row confronting them as to their tastes. As this was the third
round since entering the place, I was anxious to get away, and summoning
Forrest, we started for our horses. We had left them at a barn on a back
street, but before reaching the livery, Quince concluded that he needed a
few more cartridges. I had ordered a hundred the day before for my own
personal use, but they had been sent out with the supplies and were then
in camp. My own belt was filled with ammunition, but on Forrest buying
fifty, I took an equal number, and after starting out of the store, both
turned back and doubled our purchases. On arriving at the stable, whom
should I meet but the Wyoming cowman who had left us at Grinnell. During
the few minutes in which I was compelled to listen to his troubles, he
informed me that on his arrival at Ogalalla, all the surplus cow-hands had
been engaged by a man named Tolleston for the Yellowstone country. He had
sent to his ranch, however, for an outfit who would arrive that evening,
and he expected to start his herd the next morning. But without wasting
any words, Forrest and I swung into our saddles, waved a farewell to the
wayfaring acquaintance, and rode around to the White Elephant. The sheriff
and quite a cavalcade of our boys had already started, and on reaching the
street which terminated in the only road leading to the North Fork, we
were halted by Flood to await the arrival of the others. Jim Reed and my
employer were still behind, and some little time was lost before they came
up, sufficient to give the sheriff a full half-mile start. But under the
leadership of the two drovers, we shook out our horses, and the advance
cavalcade were soon overtaken.</p>
<p>"Well, Mr. Sheriff," said old man Don, as he reined in beside Phillips,
"how do you like the looks of this for a posse? I'll vouch that they're
all good cow-hands, and if you want to deputize the whole works, why, just
work your rabbit's foot. You might leave Reed and me out, but I think
there's some forty odd without us. Jim and I are getting a little too old,
but we'll hang around and run errands and do the clerking. I'm perfectly
willing to waste a week, and remember that we've got the chuck and nearly
a thousand saddle horses right over here on the North Fork. You can move
your office out to one of my wagons if you wish, and whatever's mine is
yours, just so long as Honest John and his friends pay the fiddler. If he
and his associates are going to make one hundred thousand dollars on the
Buford contract, one thing is certain—I'll lose plenty of money on
this year's drive. If he refuses service and you take possession, your
office will be perfectly justified in putting a good force of men with the
herd. And at ten dollars a day for a man and horse, they'll soon get sick
and Reed will get his pay. If I have to hold the sack in the end, I don't
want any company."</p>
<p>The location of the beeves was about twelve miles from town and but a
short distance above the herds of The Rebel and Bob Quirk. It was nearly
four o'clock when we left the hamlet, and by striking a free gait, we
covered the intervening distance in less than an hour and a half. The mesa
between the two rivers was covered with through cattle, and as we neared
the herd in question, we were met by the larger one of the two chief
deputies. The undersheriff was on his way to town, but on sighting his
superior among us, he halted and a conference ensued. Sponsilier and
Priest made a great ado over the big deputy on meeting, and after a few
inquiries were exchanged, the latter turned to Sheriff Phillips and said:</p>
<p>"Well, we served the papers and I left the other two boys in temporary
possession of the cattle. It's a badly mixed-up affair. The Texas foreman
is still in charge, and he seems like a reasonable fellow. The terms of
the sale were to be half cash here and the balance at the point of
delivery. But the buyers only paid forty thousand down, and the trail boss
refuses to start until they make good their agreement. From what I could
gather from the foreman, the buyers simply buffaloed the young fellow out
of his beeves, and are now hanging back for more favorable terms. He
accepted service all right and assured me that our men would be welcome at
his wagon until further notice, so I left matters just as I found them.
But as I was on the point of leaving, that segundo of the buyers arrived
and tried to stir up a little trouble. We all sat down on him rather hard,
and as I left he and the Texas foreman were holding quite a big pow-wow."</p>
<p>"That's Tolleston all right," said old man Don, "and you can depend on him
stirring up a muss if there's any show. It's a mystery to me how I
tolerated that fellow as long as I did. If some of you boys will corner
and hold him for me, I'd enjoy reading his title to him in a few plain
words. It's due him, and I want to pay everything I owe. What's the
programme, Mr. Sheriff?"</p>
<p>"The only safe thing to do is to get full possession of the cattle,"
replied Phillips. "My deputies are all right, but they don't thoroughly
understand the situation. Mr. Lovell, if you can lend me ten men, I'll
take charge of the herd at once and move them back down the river about
seven miles. They're entirely too near the west line of the county to suit
me, and once they're in our custody the money will be forthcoming, or the
expenses will mount up rapidly. Let's ride."</p>
<p>The under-sheriff turned back with us. A swell of the mesa cut off a view
of the herd, but under the leadership of the deputy we rode to its summit,
and there before and under us were both camp and cattle. Arriving at the
wagon, Phillips very politely informed the Texas foreman that he would
have to take full possession of his beeves for a few days, or until the
present difficulties were adjusted. The trail boss was a young fellow of
possibly thirty, and met the sheriff's demand with several questions, but,
on being assured that his employer's equity in the herd would be fully
protected without expense, he offered no serious objection. It developed
that Reed had some slight acquaintance with the seller of the cattle, and
lost no time in informing the trail boss of the record of the parties with
whom his employer was dealing. The one-armed drover's language was plain,
the foreman knew Reed by reputation, and when Lovell assured the young man
that he would be welcome at any of his wagons, and would be perfectly at
liberty to see that his herd was properly cared for, he yielded without a
word. My sympathies were with the foreman, for he seemed an honest fellow,
and deliberately to take his herd from him, to my impulsive reasoning
looked like an injustice. But the sheriff and those two old cowmen were
determined, and the young fellow probably acted for the best in making a
graceful surrender.</p>
<p>Meanwhile the two deputies in charge failed to materialize, and on inquiry
they were reported as out at the herd with Tolleston. The foreman
accompanied us to the cattle, and while on the way he informed the sheriff
that he wished to count the beeves over to him and take a receipt for the
same. Phillips hesitated, as he was no cowman, but Reed spoke up and
insisted that it was fair and just, saying: "Of course, you'll count the
cattle and give him a receipt in numbers, ages, and brands. It's not this
young man's fault that his herd must undergo all this trouble, and when he
turns them over to an officer of the law he ought to have something to
show for it. Any of Lovell's foremen here will count them to a hair for
you, and Don and I will witness the receipt, which will make it good among
cowmen."</p>
<p>Without loss of time the herd was started east. Tolleston kept well out of
reach of my employer, and besought every one to know what this movement
meant. But when the trail boss and Jim Flood rode out to a swell of ground
ahead, and the point-men began filing the column through between the two
foremen, Archie was sagacious enough to know that the count meant
something serious. In the mean time Bob Quirk had favored Tolleston with
his company, and when the count was nearly half over, my brother quietly
informed him that the sheriff was taking possession. Once the atmosphere
cleared, Archie grew uneasy and restless, and as the last few hundred
beeves were passing the counters, he suddenly concluded to return to
Ogalalla. But my brother urged him not to think of going until he had met
his former employer, assuring Tolleston that the old man had made inquiry
about and was anxious to meet him. The latter, however, could not remember
anything of urgent importance between them, and pleaded the lateness of
the hour and the necessity of his immediate return to town. The more
urgent Bob Quirk became, the more fidgety grew Archie. The last of the
cattle were passing the count as Tolleston turned away from my brother's
entreaty, and giving his horse the rowel, started off on a gallop. But
there was a scattering field of horsemen to pass, and before the parting
guest could clear it, a half-dozen ropes circled in the air and deftly
settled over his horse's neck and himself, one of which pinioned his arms.
The boys were expecting something of this nature, and fully half the men
in Lovell's employ galloped up and formed a circle around the captive, now
livid with rage. Archie was cursing by both note and rhyme, and had
managed to unearth a knife and was trying to cut the lassos which fettered
himself and horse, when Dorg Seay rode in and rapped him over the knuckles
with a six-shooter, saying, "Don't do that, sweetheart; those ropes cost
thirty-five cents apiece."</p>
<p>Fortunately the knife was knocked from Tolleston's hand and his
six-shooter secured, rendering him powerless to inflict injury to any one.
The cattle count had ended, and escorted by a cordon of mounted men, both
horse and captive were led over to where a contingent had gathered around
to hear the result of the count. I was merely a delighted spectator, and
as the other men turned from the cattle and met us, Lovell languidly threw
one leg over his horse's neck, and, suppressing a smile, greeted his old
foreman.</p>
<p>"Hello, Archie," said he; "it's been some little time since last we met.
I've been hearing some bad reports about you, and was anxious to meet up
and talk matters over. Boys, take those ropes off his horse and give him
back his irons; I raised this man and made him the cow-hand he is, and
there's nothing so serious between us that we should remain strangers.
Now, Archie, I want you to know that you are in the employ of my enemies,
who are as big a set of scoundrels as ever missed a halter. You and Flood,
here, were the only two men in my employ who knew all the facts in regard
to the Buford contract. And just because I wouldn't favor you over a blind
horse, you must hunt up the very men who are trying to undermine me on
this drive. No wonder they gave you employment, for you're a valuable man
to them; but it's at a serious loss,—the loss of your honor. You
can't go home to Texas and again be respected among men. This outfit you
are with will promise you the earth, but the moment that they're through
with you, you won't cut any more figure than a last year's bird's nest.
They'll throw you aside like an old boot, and you'll fall so hard that
you'll hear the clock tick in China. Now, Archie, it hurts me to see a
young fellow like you go wrong, and I'm willing to forgive the past and
stretch out a hand to save you. If you'll quit those people, you can have
Flood's cattle from here to the Rosebud Agency, or I'll buy you a ticket
home and you can help with the fall work at the ranch. You may have a day
or two to think this matter over, and whatever you decide on will be
final. You have shown little gratitude for the opportunities that I've
given you, but we'll break the old slate and start all over with a new
one. Now, that's all I wanted to say to you, except to do your own
thinking. If you're going back to town, I'll ride a short distance with
you."</p>
<p>The two rode away together, but halted within sight for a short
conference, after which Lovell returned. The cattle were being drifted
east by the deputies and several of our boys, the trail boss having called
off his men on an agreement of the count. The herd had tallied out
thirty-six hundred and ten head, but in making out the receipt, the fact
was developed that there were some six hundred beeves not in the regular
road brand. These had been purchased extra from another source, and had
been paid for in full by the buyers, the seller of the main herd agreeing
to deliver them along with his own. This was fortunate, as it increased
the equity of the buyers in the cattle, and more than established a
sufficient interest to satisfy the judgment and all expenses.</p>
<p>Darkness was approaching, which hastened our actions. Two men from each
outfit present were detailed to hold the cattle that night, and were sent
on ahead to Priest's camp to secure their suppers and a change of mounts.
The deposed trail boss accepted an invitation to accompany us and spend
the night at one of our wagons, and we rode away to overtake the drifting
herd. The different outfits one by one dropped out and rode for their
camps; but as mine lay east and across the river, the course of the herd
was carrying me home. After passing The Rebel's wagon fully a half mile,
we rounded in the herd, which soon lay down to rest on the bedground. In
the gathering twilight, the camp-fires of nearly a dozen trail wagons were
gleaming up and down the river, and while we speculated with Sponsilier's
boys which one was ours, the guard arrived and took the bedded herd. The
two old cowmen and the trail boss had dropped out opposite my brother's
camp, leaving something like ten men with the attached beeves; but on
being relieved by the first watch, Flood invited Sheriff Phillips and his
deputies across the river to spend the night with him.</p>
<p>"Like to, mighty well, but can't do it," replied Phillips. "The sheriff's
office is supposed to be in town, and not over on the North Fork, but I'll
leave two of these deputies with you. Some of you had better ride in
to-morrow, for there may be overtures made looking towards a settlement;
and treat those beeves well, so that there can be no charge of damage to
the cattle. Good-night, everybody."</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2HCH0015" id="link2HCH0015"></SPAN></p>
<br/>
<h2> CHAPTER XV. TOLLESTON BUTTS IN </h2>
<p>Morning dawned on a scene of pastoral grandeur. The valley of the North
Platte was dotted with cattle from hill and plain. The river, well
confined within its low banks, divided an unsurveyed domain of
green-swarded meadows like a boundary line between vast pastures. The
exodus of cattle from Texas to the new Northwest was nearing flood-tide,
and from every swell and knoll the solitary figure of the herdsman greeted
the rising sun.</p>
<p>Sponsilier and I had agreed to rejoin our own outfits at the first
opportunity. We might have exchanged places the evening before, but I had
a horse and some ammunition at Dave's camp and was just contentious enough
not to give up a single animal from my own mount. On the other hand, Mr.
Dave Sponsilier would have traded whole remudas with me; but my love for a
good horse was strong, and Fort Buford was many a weary mile distant.
Hence there was no surprise shown as Sponsilier rode up to his own wagon
that morning in time for breakfast. We were good friends when personal
advantages did not conflict, and where our employer's interests were at
stake we stood shoulder to shoulder like comrades. Yet Dave gave me a big
jolly about being daffy over my horses, well knowing that there is an
indescribable nearness between one of our craft and his own mount. But
warding off his raillery, just the same and in due time, I cantered away
on my own horse.</p>
<p>As I rode up the North Fork towards my outfit, the attached herd was in
plain view across the river. Arriving at my own wagon, I saw a mute appeal
in every face for permission to go to town, and consent was readily
granted to all who had not been excused on a similar errand the day
before. The cook and horse-wrangler were included, and the activities of
the outfit in saddling and getting away were suggestive of a prairie fire
or a stampede. I accompanied them across the river, and then turned
upstream to my brother's camp, promising to join them later and make a
full day of it. At Bob's wagon they had stretched a fly, and in its shade
lounged half a dozen men, while an air of languid indolence pervaded the
camp. Without dismounting, I announced myself as on the way to town, and
invited any one who wished to accompany me. Lovell and Reed both declined;
half of Bob's men had been excused and started an hour before, but my
brother assured me that if I would wait until the deposed foreman
returned, the latter's company could be counted on. I waited, and in the
course of half an hour the trail boss came back from his cattle. During
the interim, the two old cowmen reviewed Grant's siege of Vicksburg, both
having been participants, but on opposite sides. While the guest was
shifting his saddle to a loaned horse, I inquired if there was anything
that I could attend to for any one at Ogalalla. Lovell could think of
nothing; but as we mounted to start, Reed aroused himself, and coming
over, rested the stub of his armless sleeve on my horse's neck, saying:</p>
<p>"You boys might drop into the sheriff's office as you go in and also again
as you are starting back. Report the cattle as having spent a quiet night
and ask Phillips if he has any word for me."</p>
<p>Turning to the trail boss he continued: "Young man, I would suggest that
you hunt up your employer and have him stir things up. The cattle will be
well taken care of, but we're just as anxious to turn them back to you as
you are to receive them. Tell the seller that it would be well worth his
while to see Lovell and myself before going any farther. We can put him in
possession of a few facts that may save him time and trouble. I reckon
that's about all. Oh, yes, I'll be at this wagon all evening."</p>
<p>My brother rode a short distance with us and introduced the stranger as
Hugh Morris. He proved a sociable fellow, had made three trips up the
trail as foreman, his first two herds having gone to the Cherokee Strip
under contract. By the time we reached Ogalalla, as strong a fraternal
level existed between us as though we had known each other for years.
Halting for a moment at the sheriff's office, we delivered our messages,
after which we left our horses at the same corral with the understanding
that we would ride back together. A few drinks were indulged in before
parting, then each went to attend to his own errands, but we met
frequently during the day. Once my boys were provided with funds, they
fell to gambling so eagerly that they required no further thought on my
part until evening. Several times during the day I caught glimpses of
Tolleston, always on horseback, and once surrounded by quite a cavalcade
of horsemen. Morris and I took dinner at the hotel where the trio of
government jobbers were stopping. They were in evidence, and amongst the
jolliest of the guests, commanding and receiving the best that the
hostelry afforded. Sutton was likewise present, but quiet and
unpretentious, and I thought there was a false, affected note in the
hilarity of the ringsters, and for effect. I was known to two of the trio,
but managed to overhear any conversation which was adrift. After dinner
and over fragrant cigars, they reared their feet high on an outer gallery,
and the inference could be easily drawn that a contract, unless it
involved millions, was beneath their notice.</p>
<p>Morris informed me that his employer's suspicions were aroused, and that
he had that morning demanded a settlement in full or the immediate release
of the herd. They had laughed the matter off as a mere incident that would
right itself at the proper time, and flashed as references a list of
congressmen, senators, and bankers galore. But Morris's employer had stood
firm in his contentions, refusing to be overawed by flattery or empty
promises. What would be the result remained to be seen, and the foreman
and myself wandered aimlessly around town during the afternoon, meeting
other trail bosses, nearly all of whom had heard more or less about the
existing trouble. That we had the sympathy of the cattle interests on our
side goes without saying, and one of them, known as "the kidgloved
foreman," a man in the employ of Shanghai Pierce, invoked the powers above
to witness what would happen if he were in Lovell's boots. This was my
first meeting with the picturesque trail boss, though I had heard of him
often and found him a trifle boastful but not a bad fellow. He
distinguished himself from others of his station on the trail by always
wearing white shirts, kid gloves, riding-boots, inlaid spurs, while a
heavy silver chain was wound several times round a costly sombrero in lieu
of a hatband. We spent an hour or more together, drinking sparingly, and
at parting he begged that I would assure my employer that he sympathized
with him and was at his command.</p>
<p>The afternoon was waning when I hunted up my outfit and started them for
camp. With one or two exceptions, the boys were broke and perfectly
willing to go. Morris and I joined them at the livery where they had left
their horses, and together we started out of town. Ordering them to ride
on to camp, and saying that I expected to return by way of Bob Quirk's
wagon, Morris and myself stopped at the court-house. Sheriff Phillips was
in his office and recognized us both at a glance. "Well, she's working,"
said he, "and I'll probably have some word for you late this evening. Yes,
one of the local attorneys for your friends came in and we figured
everything up. He thought that if this office would throw off a certain
per cent. of its expense, and Reed would knock off the interest, his
clients would consent to a settlement. I told him to go right back and
tell his people that as long as they thought that way, it would only cost
them one hundred and forty dollars every twenty-four hours." The lawyer
was back within twenty minutes, bringing a draft, covering every item, and
urged me to have it accepted by wire. The bank was closed, but I found the
cashier in a poker-game and played his hand while he went over to the
depot and sent the message. "The operator has orders to send a duplicate
of the answer to this office, and the moment I get it, if favorable, I'll
send a deputy with the news over to the North Fork. Tell Reed that I think
the check's all right this time, but we'll stand pat until we know for a
certainty. We'll get an answer by morning sure."</p>
<p>The message was hailed with delight at Bob Quirk's wagon. On nearing the
river, Morris rode by way of the herd to ask the deputies in charge to
turn the cattle up the river towards his camp. Several of the foreman's
men were waiting at my brother's wagon, and on Morris's return he ordered
his outfit to meet the beeves the next morning and be in readiness to
receive them back. Our foremen were lying around temporary headquarters,
and as we were starting for our respective camps for the night, Lovell
suggested that we hold our outfits all ready to move out with the herds on
an hour's notice. Accordingly the next morning, I refused every one leave
of absence, and gave special orders to the cook and horse-wrangler to have
things in hand to start on an emergency order. Jim Flood had agreed to
wait for me, and we would recross the river together and hear the report
from the sheriff's office. Forrest and Sponsilier rode up about the same
time we arrived at his wagon, and all four of us set out for headquarters
across the North Fork. The sun was several hours high when we reached the
wagon, and learned that an officer had arrived during the night with a
favorable answer, that the cattle had been turned over to Morris without a
count, and that the deputies had started for town at daybreak.</p>
<p>"Well, boys," said Lovell, as we came in after picketing our horses,
"Reed, here, wins out, but we're just as much at sea as ever. I've looked
the situation over from a dozen different viewpoints, and the only thing
to do is graze across country and tender our cattle at Fort Buford. It's
my nature to look on the bright side of things, and yet I'm old enough to
know that justice, in a world so full of injustice, is a rarity. By
allowing the earnest-money paid at Dodge to apply, some kind of a
compromise might be effected, whereby I could get rid of two of these
herds, with three hundred saddle horses thrown back on my hands at the
Yellowstone River. I might dispose of the third herd here and give the
remuda away, but at a total loss of at least thirty thousand dollars on
the Buford cattle. But then there's my bond to The Western Supply Company,
and if this herd of Morris's fails to respond on the day of delivery, I
know who will have to make good. An Indian uprising, or the enforcement of
quarantine against Texas fever, or any one of a dozen things might tie up
the herd, and September the 15th come and go and no beef offered on the
contract. I've seen outfits start out and never get through with the
chuck-wagon, even. Sutton's advice is good; we'll tender the cattle. There
is a chance that we'll get turned down, but if we do, I have enough
indemnity money in my possession to temper the wind if the day of delivery
should prove a chilly one to us. I think you had all better start in the
morning."</p>
<p>The old man's review of the situation was a rational one, in which Jim
Reed and the rest of us concurred. Several of the foremen, among them
myself, were anxious to start at once, but Lovell urged that we kill a
beef before starting and divide it up among the six outfits. He also
proposed to Flood that they go into town during the afternoon and freely
announce our departure in the morning, hoping to force any issue that
might be smouldering in the enemy's camp. The outlook for an early
departure was hailed with delight by the older foremen, and we younger and
more impulsive ones yielded. The cook had orders to get up something extra
for dinner, and we played cards and otherwise lounged around until the
midday meal was announced as ready. A horse had been gotten up for Lovell
to ride and was on picket, all the relieved men from the attached herd
were at Bob's wagon for dinner, and jokes and jollity graced the occasion.
But near the middle of the noon repast, some one sighted a mounted man
coming at a furious pace for the camp, and shortly the horseman dashed up
and inquired for Lovell. We all arose, when the messenger dismounted and
handed my employer a letter. Tearing open the missive, the old man read it
and turned ashy pale. The message was from Mike Sutton, stating that a
fourth member of the ring had arrived during the forenoon, accompanied by
a United States marshal from the federal court at Omaha; that the officer
was armed with an order of injunctive relief; that he had deputized thirty
men whom Tolleston had gathered, and proposed taking possession of the two
herds in question that afternoon.</p>
<p>"Like hell they will," said Don Lovell, as he started for his horse. His
action was followed by every man present, including the one-armed guest,
and within a few minutes thirty men swung into saddles, subject to orders.
The camps of the two herds at issue were about four and five miles down
and across the river, and no doubt Tolleston knew of their location, as
they were only a little more than an hour's ride from Ogalalla. There was
no time to be lost, and as we hastily gathered around the old man, he
said: "Ride for your outfits, boys, and bring along every man you can
spare. We'll meet north of the river about midway between Quince's and
Tom's camps. Bring all the cartridges you have, and don't spare your
horses going or coming."</p>
<p>Priest's wagon was almost on a line with mine, though south of the river.
Fortunately I was mounted on one of the best horses in my string, and
having the farthest to go, shook the kinks out of him as old Paul and
myself tore down the mesa. After passing The Rebel's camp, I held my
course as long as the footing was solid, but on encountering the first
sand, crossed the river nearly opposite the appointed rendezvous. The
North Platte was fordable at any point, flowing but a midsummer stage of
water, with numerous wagon crossings, its shallow channel being about one
hundred yards wide. I reined in my horse for the first time near the
middle of the stream, as the water reached my saddle-skirts; when I came
out on the other side, Priest and his boys were not a mile behind me. As I
turned down the river, casting a backward glance, squads of horsemen were
galloping in from several quarters and joining a larger one which was
throwing up clouds of dust like a column of cavalry. In making a cut-off
to reach my camp, I crossed a sand dune from which I sighted the marshal's
posse less than two miles distant. My boys were gambling among themselves,
not a horse under saddle, and did not notice my approach until I dashed
up. Three lads were on herd, but the rest, including the wrangler, ran for
their mounts on picket, while Parent and myself ransacked the wagon for
ammunition. Fortunately the supply of the latter was abundant, and while
saddles were being cinched on horses, the cook and I divided the
ammunition and distributed it among the men. The few minutes' rest
refreshed my horse, but as we dashed away, the boys yelling like
Comanches, the five-mile ride had bested him and he fell slightly behind.
As we turned into the open valley, it was a question if we or the marshal
would reach the stream first; he had followed an old wood road and would
strike the river nearly opposite Forrest's camp. The horses were excited
and straining every nerve, and as we neared our crowd the posse halted on
the south side and I noticed a conveyance among them in which were seated
four men. There was a moment's consultation held, when the posse entered
the water and began fording the stream, the vehicle and its occupants
remaining on the other side. We had halted in a circle about fifty yards
back from the river-bank, and as the first two men came out of the water,
Don Lovell rode forward several lengths of his horse, and with his hand
motioned to them to halt. The leaders stopped within easy speaking
distance, the remainder of the posse halting in groups at their rear, when
Lovell demanded the meaning of this demonstration.</p>
<p>An inquiry and answer followed identifying the speakers. "In pursuance of
an order from the federal court of this jurisdiction," continued the
marshal, "I am vested with authority to take into my custody two herds,
numbering nearly seven thousand beeves, now in your possession, and
recently sold to Field, Radcliff & Co. for government purposes. I
propose to execute my orders peaceably, and any interference on your part
will put you and your men in contempt of government authority. If
resistance is offered, I can, if necessary, have a company of United
States cavalry here from Fort Logan within forty-eight hours to enforce
the mandates of the federal court. Now my advice to you would be to turn
these cattle over without further controversy."</p>
<p>"And my advice to you," replied Lovell, "is to go back to your federal
court and tell that judge that as a citizen of these United States, and
one who has borne arms in her defense, I object to having snap judgment
rendered against me. If the honorable court which you have the pleasure to
represent is willing to dispossess me of my property in favor of a ring of
government thieves, and on only hearing one side of the question, then
consider me in contempt. I'll gladly go back to Omaha with you, but you
can't so much as look at a hoof in my possession. Now call your troops, or
take me with you for treating with scorn the orders of your court."</p>
<p>Meanwhile every man on our side had an eye on Archie Tolleston, who had
gradually edged forward until his horse stood beside that of the marshal.
Before the latter could frame a reply to Lovell's ultimatum, Tolleston
said to the federal officer:</p>
<p>"Didn't my employers tell you that the old —— — —
—— would defy you without a demonstration of soldiers at your
back? Now, the laugh's on you, and—"</p>
<p>"No, it's on you," interrupted a voice at my back, accompanied by a pistol
report. My horse jumped forward, followed by a fusillade of shots behind
me, when the hireling deputies turned and plunged into the river.
Tolleston had wheeled his horse, joining the retreat, and as I brought my
six-shooter into action and was in the act of leveling on him, he reeled
from the saddle, but clung to the neck of his mount as the animal dashed
into the water. I held my fire in the hope that he would right in the
saddle and afford me a shot, but he struck a swift current, released his
hold, and sunk out of sight. Above the din and excitement of the moment, I
heard a voice which I recognized as Reed's, shouting, "Cut loose on that
team, boys! blaze away at those harness horses!" Evidently the team had
been burnt by random firing, for they were rearing and plunging, and as I
fired my first shot at them, the occupants sprang out of the vehicle and
the team ran away. A lull occurred in the shooting, to eject shells and
refill cylinders, which Lovell took advantage of by ordering back a number
of impulsive lads, who were determined to follow up the fleeing deputies.</p>
<p>"Come back here, you rascals, and stop this shooting!" shouted the old
man. "Stop it, now, or you'll land me in a federal prison for life! Those
horsemen may be deceived. When federal courts can be deluded with
sugar-coated blandishments, ordinary men ought to be excusable."</p>
<p>Six-shooters were returned to their holsters. Several horses and two men
on our side had received slight flesh wounds, as there had been a random
return fire. The deputies halted well out of pistol range, covering the
retreat of the occupants of the carriage as best they could, but leaving
three dead horses in plain view. As we dropped back towards Forrest's
wagon, the team in the mean time having been caught, those on foot were
picked up and given seats in the conveyance. Meanwhile a remuda of horses
and two chuck-wagons were sighted back on the old wood road, but a
horseman met and halted them and they turned back for Ogalalla. On
reaching our nearest camp, the posse south of the river had started on
their return, leaving behind one of their number in the muddy waters of
the North Platte.</p>
<p>Late that evening, as we were preparing to leave for our respective camps,
Lovell said to the assembled foremen: "Quince will take Reed and me into
Ogalalla about midnight. If Sutton advises it, all three of us will go
down to Omaha and try and square things. I can't escape a severe fine, but
what do I care as long as I have their money to pay it with? The killing
of that fool boy worries me more than a dozen fines. It was uncalled for,
too, but he would butt in, and you fellows were all itching for the chance
to finger a trigger. Now the understanding is that you all start in the
morning."</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2HCH0016" id="link2HCH0016"></SPAN></p>
<br/>
<h2> CHAPTER XVI. CROSSING THE NIOBRARA </h2>
<p>The parting of the ways was reached. On the morning of July 12, the
different outfits in charge of Lovell's drive in '84 started on three
angles of the compass for their final destination. The Rosebud Agency,
where Flood's herd was to be delivered on September 1, lay to the
northeast in Dakota. The route was not direct, and the herd would be
forced to make quite an elbow, touching on the different forks of the Loup
in order to secure water. The Rebel and my brother would follow up on the
south side of the North Platte until near old Fort Laramie, when their
routes would separate, the latter turning north for Montana, while Priest
would continue along the same watercourse to within a short distance of
his destination. The Buford herds would strike due north from the first
tributary putting in from above, which we would intercept the second
morning out.</p>
<p>An early start was the order of the day. My beeves were pushed from the
bed-ground with the first sign of dawn, and when the relief overtook them,
they were several miles back from the river and holding a northwest
course. My camp being the lowest one on the North Fork, Forrest and
Sponsilier, also starting at daybreak, naturally took the lead, the latter
having fully a five-mile start over my outfit. But as we left the valley
and came up on the mesa, there on an angle in our front, Flood's herd
snailed along like an army brigade, anxious to dispute our advance. The
point-men veered our cattle slightly to the left, and as the drag-end of
Flood's beeves passed before us, standing in our stirrups we waved our
hats in farewell to the lads, starting on their last tack for the Rosebud
Agency. Across the river were the dim outlines of two herds trailing
upstream, being distinguishable from numerous others by the dust-clouds
which marked the moving from the grazing cattle. The course of the North
Platte was southwest, and on the direction which we were holding, we would
strike the river again during the afternoon at a bend some ten or twelve
miles above.</p>
<p>Near the middle of the forenoon we were met by Hugh Morris. He was
discouraged, as it was well known now that his cattle would be tendered in
competition with ours at Fort Buford. There was no comparison between the
beeves, ours being much larger, more uniform in weight, and in better
flesh. He looked over both Forrest's and Sponsilier's herds before meeting
us, and was good enough judge of cattle to know that his stood no chance
against ours, if they were to be received on their merits. We talked
matters over for fully an hour, and I advised him never to leave Keith
County until the last dollar in payment for his beeves was in hand. Morris
thought this was quite possible, as information had reached him that the
buyers had recently purchased a remuda, and now, since they had failed to
take possession of two of Lovell's herds, it remained to be seen what the
next move would be. He thought it quite likely, though, that a settlement
could be effected whereby he would be relieved at Ogalalla. Mutually
hoping that all would turn out well, we parted until our paths should
cross again.</p>
<p>We intercepted the North Fork again during the afternoon, watering from it
for the last time, and the next morning struck the Blue River, the
expected tributary. Sponsilier maintained his position in the lead, but I
was certain when we reached the source of the Blue, David would fall to
the rear, as thenceforth there was neither trail nor trace, map nor
compass. The year before, Forrest and I had been over the route to the
Pine Ridge Agency, and one or the other of us must take the lead across a
dry country between the present stream and tributaries of the Niobrara.
The Blue possessed the attributes of a river in name only, and the third
day up it, Sponsilier crossed the tributary to allow either Forrest or
myself to take the lead. Quince professed a remarkable ignorance and
faulty memory as to the topography of the country between the Blue and
Niobrara, and threw bouquets at me regarding my ability always to find
water. It is true that I had gone and returned across this arid belt the
year before, but on the back trip it was late in the fall, and we were
making forty miles a day with nothing but a wagon and remuda, water being
the least of my troubles. But a compromise was effected whereby we would
both ride out the country anew, leaving the herds to lie over on the head
waters of the Blue River. There were several shallow lakes in the
intervening country, and on finding the first one sufficient to our needs,
the herds were brought up, and we scouted again in advance. The abundance
of antelope was accepted as an assurance of water, and on recognizing
certain landmarks, I agreed to take the lead thereafter, and we turned
back. The seventh day out from the Blue, the Box Buttes were sighted, at
the foot of which ran a creek by the same name, and an affluent of the
Niobrara. Contrary to expectations, water was even more plentiful than the
year before, and we grazed nearly the entire distance. The antelope were
unusually tame; with six-shooters we killed quite a number by flagging, or
using a gentle horse for a blind, driving the animal forward with the
bridle reins, tacking frequently, and allowing him to graze up within
pistol range.</p>
<p>The Niobrara was a fine grazing country. Since we had over two months at
our disposal, after leaving the North Platte, every advantage was given
the cattle to round into form. Ten miles was a day's move, and the
different outfits kept in close touch with each other. We had planned a
picnic for the crossing of the Niobrara, and on reaching that stream
during the afternoon, Sponsilier and myself crossed, camping a mile apart,
Forrest remaining on the south side. Wild raspberries had been extremely
plentiful, and every wagon had gathered a quantity sufficient to make a
pie for each man. The cooks had mutually agreed to meet at Sponsilier's
wagon and do the baking, and every man not on herd was present in
expectation of the coming banquet. One of Forrest's boys had a fiddle, and
bringing it along, the festivities opened with a stag dance, the "ladies"
being designated by wearing a horse-hobble loosely around their necks.
While the pies were baking, a slow process with Dutch ovens, I sat on the
wagon-tongue and played the violin by the hour. A rude imitation of the
gentler sex, as we had witnessed in dance-halls in Dodge and Ogalalla, was
reproduced with open shirt fronts, and amorous advances by the sterner
one.</p>
<p>The dancing ceased the moment the banquet was ready. The cooks had
experienced considerable trouble in restraining some of the boys from the
too free exercise of what they looked upon as the inalienable right of man
to eat his pie when, where, and how it best pleased him. But Sponsilier,
as host, stood behind the culinary trio, and overawed the impetuous
guests. The repast barely concluded in time for the wranglers and first
guard from Forrest's and my outfit to reach camp, catch night-horses, bed
the cattle, and excuse the herders, as supper was served only at the one
wagon. The relieved ones, like eleventh-hour guests, came tearing in after
darkness, and the tempting spread soon absorbed them. As the evening wore
on, the loungers gathered in several circles, and the raconteur held sway.
The fact that we were in a country in which game abounded suggested
numerous stories. The delights of cat-hunting by night found an enthusiast
in each one present. Every dog in our memory, back to early boyhood, was
properly introduced and his best qualities applauded. Not only cat-hounds
but coon-dogs had a respectful hearing.</p>
<p>"I remember a hound," said Forrest's wrangler, "which I owned when a boy
back in Virginia. My folks lived in the foot-hills of the Blue Ridge
Mountains in that state. We were just as poor as our poorest neighbors.
But if there was any one thing that that section was rich in it was dogs,
principally hounds. This dog of mine was four years old when I left home
to go to Texas. Fine hound, swallow marked, and when he opened on a scent
you could always tell what it was that he was running. I never allowed him
to run with packs, but generally used him in treeing coon, which pestered
the cornfields during roasting-ear season and in the fall. Well, after I
had been out in Texas about five years, I concluded to go back on a little
visit to the old folks. There were no railroads within twenty miles of my
home, and I had to hoof it that distance, so I arrived after dark. Of
course my return was a great surprise to my folks, and we sat up late
telling stories about things out West. I had worked with cattle all the
time, and had made one trip over the trail from Collin County to Abilene,
Kansas.</p>
<p>"My folks questioned me so fast that they gave me no show to make any
inquiries in return, but I finally eased one in and asked about my dog
Keiser, and was tickled to hear that he was still living. I went out and
called him, but he failed to show up, when mother explained his absence by
saying that he often went out hunting alone now, since there was none of
us boys at home to hunt with him. They told me that he was no account any
longer; that he had grown old and gray, and father said he was too slow on
trail to be of any use. I noticed that it was a nice damp night, and if my
old dog had been there, I think I'd have taken a circle around the fields
in the hope of hearing him sing once more. Well, we went back into the
house, and after talking awhile longer, I climbed into the loft and went
to bed. I didn't sleep very sound that night, and awakened several times.
About an hour before daybreak, I awoke suddenly and imagined I heard a
hound baying faintly in the distance. Finally I got up and opened the
board window in the gable and listened. Say, boys, I knew that hound's
baying as well as I know my own saddle. It was old Keiser, and he had
something treed about a mile from the house, across a ridge over in some
slashes. I slipped on my clothes, crept downstairs, and taking my old
man's rifle out of the rack, started to him.</p>
<p>"It was as dark as a stack of black cats, but I knew every path and byway
by heart. I followed the fields as far as I could, and later, taking into
the timber, I had to go around a long swamp. An old beaver dam had once
crossed the outlet of this marsh, and once I gained it, I gave a long yell
to let the dog know that some one was coming. He answered me, and quite a
little while before day broke I reached him. Did he know me? Why, he knew
me as easy as the little boy knew his pap. Right now, I can't remember any
simple thing in my whole life that moved me just as that little reunion of
me and my dog, there in those woods that morning. Why, he howled with
delight. He licked my face and hands and stood up on me with his wet feet
and said just as plain as he could that he was glad to see me again. And I
was glad to meet him, even though he did make me feel as mellow as a girl
over a baby.</p>
<p>"Well, when daybreak came, I shot a nice big fat Mr. Zip Coon out of an
old pin-oak, and we started for home like old pardners. Old as he was, he
played like a puppy around me, and when we came in sight of the house, he
ran on ahead and told the folks what he had found. Yes, you bet he told
them. He came near clawing all the clothing off them in his delight.
That's one reason I always like a dog and a poor man—you can't
question their friendship."</p>
<p>A circus was in progress on the other side of the wagon. From a large
rock, Jake Blair was announcing the various acts and introducing the
actors and actresses. Runt Pickett, wearing a skirt made out of a blanket
and belted with a hobble, won the admiration of all as the only living
lady lion-tamer. Resuming comfortable positions on our side of the
commissary, a lad named Waterwall, one of Sponsilier's boys, took up the
broken thread where Forrest's wrangler had left off.</p>
<p>"The greatest dog-man I ever knew," said he, "lived on the Guadalupe
River. His name was Dave Hapfinger, and he had the loveliest vagabond
temperament of any man I ever saw. It mattered nothing what he was doing,
all you had to do was to give old Dave a hint that you knew where there
was fish to be caught, or a bee-course to hunt, and he would stop the plow
and go with you for a week if necessary. He loved hounds better than any
man I ever knew. You couldn't confer greater favor than to give him a
promising hound pup, or, seeking the same, ask for one of his raising. And
he was such a good fellow. If any one was sick in the neighborhood, Uncle
Dave always had time to kill them a squirrel every day; and he could make
a broth for a baby, or fry a young squirrel, in a manner that would make a
sick man's mouth water.</p>
<p>"When I was a boy, I've laid around many a camp-fire this way and listened
to old Dave tell stories. He was quite a humorist in his way, and
possessed a wonderful memory. He could tell you the day of the month,
thirty years before, when he went to mill one time and found a peculiar
bird's nest on the way. Colonel Andrews, owner of several large
plantations, didn't like Dave, and threatened to prosecute him once for
cutting a bee-tree on his land. If the evidence had been strong enough, I
reckon the Colonel would. No doubt Uncle Dave was guilty, but mere
suspicion isn't sufficient proof.</p>
<p>"Colonel Andrews was a haughty old fellow, blue-blooded and proud as a
peacock, and about the only way Dave could get even with him was in his
own mild, humorous way. One day at dinner at a neighboring log-rolling,
when all danger of prosecution for cutting the bee-tree had passed, Uncle
Dave told of a recent dream of his, a pure invention. 'I dreamt,' said he,
'that Colonel Andrews died and went to heaven. There was an unusually big
commotion at St. Peter's gate on his arrival. A troop of angels greeted
him, still the Colonel seemed displeased at his reception. But the
welcoming hosts humored him forward, and on nearing the throne, the
Almighty, recognizing the distinguished arrival, vacated the throne and
came down to greet the Colonel personally. At this mark of appreciation,
he relaxed a trifle, and when the Almighty insisted that he should take
the throne seat, Colonel Andrews actually smiled for the first time on
earth or in heaven.'</p>
<p>"Uncle Dave told this story so often that he actually believed it himself.
But finally a wag friend of Colonel Andrews told of a dream which he had
had about old Dave, which the latter hugely enjoyed. According to this
second vagary, the old vagabond had also died and gone to heaven. There
was some trouble at St. Peter's gate, as they refused to admit dogs, and
Uncle Dave always had a troop of hounds at his heels. When he found that
it was useless to argue the matter, he finally yielded the point and left
the pack outside. Once inside the gate he stopped, bewildered at the scene
before him. But after waiting inside some little time unnoticed, he turned
and was on the point of asking the gate-keeper to let him out, when an
angel approached and asked him to stay. There was some doubt in Dave's
mind if he would like the place, but the messenger urged that he remain
and at least look the city over. The old hunter goodnaturedly consented,
and as they started up one of the golden streets Uncle Dave recognized an
old friend who had once given him a hound pup. Excusing himself to the
angel, he rushed over to his former earthly friend and greeted him with
warmth and cordiality. The two old cronies talked and talked about the
things below, and finally Uncle Dave asked if there was any hunting up
there. The reply was disappointing.</p>
<p>"Meanwhile the angel kept urging Uncle Dave forward to salute the throne.
But he loitered along, meeting former hunting acquaintances, and stopping
with each for a social chat. When they finally neared the throne, the
patience of the angel was nearly exhausted; and as old Dave looked up and
saw Colonel Andrews occupying the throne, he rebelled and refused to
salute, when the angel wrathfully led him back to the gate and kicked him
out among his dogs."</p>
<p>Jack Splann told a yarn about the friendship of a pet lamb and dog which
he owned when a boy. It was so unreasonable that he was interrupted on
nearly every assertion. Long before he had finished, Sponsilier checked
his narrative and informed him that if he insisted on doling out fiction
he must have some consideration for his listeners, and at least tell it
within reason. Splann stopped right there and refused to conclude his
story, though no one but myself seemed to regret it. I had a true incident
about a dog which I expected to tell, but the audience had become too
critical, and I kept quiet. As it was evident that no more dog stories
would be told, the conversation was allowed to drift at will. The recent
shooting on the North Platte had been witnessed by nearly every one
present, and was suggestive of other scenes.</p>
<p>"I have always contended," said Dorg Seay, "that the man who can control
his temper always shoots the truest. You take one of these fellows that
can smile and shoot at the same time—they are the boys that I want
to stand in with. But speaking of losing the temper, did any of you ever
see a woman real angry,—not merely cross, but the tigress in her
raging and thirsting to tear you limb from limb? I did only once, but I
have never forgotten the occasion. In supreme anger the only superior to
this woman I ever witnessed was Captain Cartwright when he shot the slayer
of his only son. He was as cool as a cucumber, as his only shot proved,
but years afterward when he told me of the incident, he lost all control
of himself, and fire flashed from his eyes like from the muzzle of a
six-shooter. 'Dorg,' said he, unconsciously shaking me like a terrier does
a rat, his blazing eyes not a foot from my face, 'Dorg, when I shot that
cowardly —— — — ——, I didn't miss the
centre of his forehead the width of my thumb nail.'</p>
<p>"But this woman defied a throng of men. Quite a few of the crowd had
assisted the night before in lynching her husband, and this meeting
occurred at the burying-ground the next afternoon. The woman's husband was
a well-known horse-thief, a dissolute, dangerous character, and had been
warned to leave the community. He lived in a little village, and after
darkness the evening before, had crept up to a window and shot a man
sitting at the supper-table with his family. The murderer had harbored a
grudge against his victim, had made threats, and before he could escape,
was caught red-handed with the freshly fired pistol in his hand. The
evidence of guilt was beyond question, and a vigilance committee didn't
waste any time in hanging him to the nearest tree.</p>
<p>"The burying took place the next afternoon. The murdered man was a popular
citizen, and the village and country turned out to pay their last
respects. But when the services were over, a number of us lingered behind,
as it was understood that the slayer as well as his victim would be
interred in the same grounds. A second grave had been prepared, and within
an hour a wagon containing a woman, three small children, and several
Mexicans drove up to the rear side of the inclosure. There was no
mistaking the party, the coffin was carried in to the open grave, when
every one present went over to offer friendly services. But as we neared
the little group the woman picked up a shovel and charged on us like a
tigress. I never saw such an expression of mingled anger and anguish in a
human countenance as was pictured in that woman's face. We shrank from her
as if she had been a lioness, and when at last she found her tongue, every
word cut like a lash. Livid with rage, the spittle frothing from her
mouth, she drove us away, saying:</p>
<p>"'Oh, you fiends of hell, when did I ask your help? Like the curs you are,
you would lick up the blood of your victim! Had you been friends to me or
mine, why did you not raise your voice in protest when they were
strangling the life out of the father of my children? Away, you cowardly
hounds! I've hired a few Mexicans to help me, and I want none of your
sympathy in this hour. Was it your hand that cut him down from the tree
this morning, and if it was not, why do I need you now? Is my shame not
enough in your eyes but that you must taunt me further? Do my innocent
children want to look upon the faces of those who robbed them of a father?
If there is a spark of manhood left in one of you, show it by leaving me
alone! And you other scum, never fear but that you will clutter hell in
reward for last night's work. Begone, and leave me with my dead!'"</p>
<p>The circus had ended. The lateness of the hour was unobserved by any one
until John Levering asked me if he should bring in my horse. It lacked
less than half an hour until the guards should change, and it was high
time our outfit was riding for camp. The innate modesty of my wrangler, in
calling attention to the time, was not forgotten, but instead of
permitting him to turn servant, I asked him to help our cook look after
his utensils. On my return to the wagon, Parent was trying to quiet a
nervous horse so as to allow him to carry the Dutch oven returning. But as
Levering was in the act of handing up the heavy oven, one of Forrest's
men, hoping to make the animal buck, attempted to place a briar stem under
the horse's tail. Sponsilier detected the movement in time to stop it, and
turning to the culprit, said: "None of that, my bully boy. I have no
objection to killing a cheap cow-hand, but these cooks have won me, hands
down. If ever I run across a girl who can make as good pies as we had for
supper, she can win the affections of my young and trusting heart."</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2HCH0017" id="link2HCH0017"></SPAN></p>
<br/>
<h2> CHAPTER XVII. WATER-BOUND </h2>
<p>Our route was carrying us to the eastward of the Black Hills. The regular
trail to the Yellowstone and Montana points was by the way of the Powder
River, through Wyoming; but as we were only grazing across to our
destination, the most direct route was adopted. The first week after
leaving the Niobrara was without incident, except the meeting with a band
of Indians, who were gathering and drying the wild fruit in which the
country abounded. At first sighting their camp we were uneasy, holding the
herd close together; but as they proved friendly, we relaxed and shared
our tobacco with the men. The women were nearly all of one stature, short,
heavy, and repulsive in appearance, while the men were tall, splendid
specimens of the aborigines, and as uniform in a dozen respects as the
cattle we were driving. Communication was impossible, except by signs, but
the chief had a letter of permission from the agent at Pine Ridge,
allowing himself and band a month's absence from the reservation on a
berrying expedition. The bucks rode with us for hours, silently absorbed
in the beeves, and towards evening turned and galloped away for their
encampment.</p>
<p>It must have been the latter part of July when we reached the South Fork
of the Big Cheyenne River. The lead was first held by one and then the
other herd, but on reaching that watercourse, we all found it more
formidable than we expected. The stage of water was not only swimming, but
where we struck it, the river had an abrupt cut-bank on one side or the
other. Sponsilier happened to be in the lead, and Forrest and myself held
back to await the decision of the veteran foreman. The river ran on a
northwest angle where we encountered it, and Dave followed down it some
distance looking for a crossing. The herds were only three or four miles
apart, and assistance could have been rendered each other, but it was
hardly to be expected that an older foreman would ask either advice or
help from younger ones. Hence Quince and myself were in no hurry, nor did
we intrude ourselves on David the pathfinder, but sought out a crossing up
the river and on our course. A convenient riffle was soon found in the
river which would admit the passage of the wagons without rafting, if a
cut-bank on the south side could be overcome. There was an abrupt drop of
about ten feet to the water level, and I argued that a wagon-way could be
easily cut in the bank and the commissaries lowered to the river's edge
with a rope to the rear axle. Forrest also favored the idea, and I was
authorized to cross the wagons in case a suitable ford could be found for
the cattle. My aversion to manual labor was quite pronounced, yet John Q.
Forrest wheedled me into accepting the task of making a wagon-road. About
a mile above the riffle, a dry wash cut a gash in the bluff bank on the
opposite side, which promised the necessary passageway for the herds out
of the river. The slope on the south side was gradual, affording an easy
inlet to the water, the only danger being on the other bank, the dry wash
not being over thirty feet wide. But we both agreed that by putting the
cattle in well above the passageway, even if the current was swift, an
easy and successful ford would result. Forrest volunteered to cross the
cattle, and together we returned to the herds for dinner.</p>
<p>Quince allowed me one of his men besides the cook, and detailed Clay
Zilligan to assist with the wagons. We took my remuda, the spades and
axes, and started for the riffle. The commissaries had orders to follow
up, and Forrest rode away with a supercilious air, as if the crossing of
wagons was beneath the attention of a foreman of his standing. Several
hours of hard work were spent with the implements at hand in cutting the
wagon-way through the bank, after which my saddle horses were driven up
and down; and when it was pronounced finished, it looked more like a
beaver-slide than a roadway. But a strong stake was cut and driven into
the ground, and a corral-rope taken from the axle to it; without detaching
the teams, the wagons were eased down the incline and crossed in safety,
the water not being over three feet deep in the shallows. I was elated
over the ease and success of my task, when Zilligan called attention to
the fact that the first herd had not yet crossed. The chosen ford was out
of sight, but had the cattle been crossing, we could have easily seen them
on the mesa opposite. "Well," said Clay, "the wagons are over, and what's
more, all the mules in the three outfits couldn't bring one of them back
up that cliff."</p>
<p>We mounted our horses, paying no attention to Zilligan's note of warning,
and started up the river. But before we came in view of the ford, a great
shouting reached our ears, and giving our horses the rowel, we rounded a
bend, only to be confronted with the river full of cattle which had missed
the passageway out on the farther side. A glance at the situation revealed
a dangerous predicament, as the swift water and the contour of the river
held the animals on the farther side or under the cut-bank. In numerous
places there was footing on the narrow ledges to which the beeves clung
like shipwrecked sailors, constantly crowding each other off into the
current and being carried downstream hundreds of yards before again
catching a foothold. Above and below the chosen ford, the river made a
long gradual bend, the current and deepest water naturally hugged the
opposite shore, and it was impossible for the cattle to turn back, though
the swimming water was not over forty yards wide. As we dashed up, the
outfit succeeded in cutting the train of cattle and turning them back,
though fully five hundred were in the river, while not over one fifth that
number had crossed in safety. Forrest was as cool as could be expected,
and exercised an elegant command of profanity in issuing his orders.</p>
<p>"I did allow for the swiftness of the current," said he, in reply to a
criticism of mine, "but those old beeves just drifted downstream like a
lot of big tubs. The horses swam it easy, and the first hundred cattle
struck the mouth of the wash square in the eye, but after that they
misunderstood it for a bath instead of a ford. Oh, well, it's live and
learn, die and forget it. But since you're so d—— strong on
the sabe, suppose you suggest a way of getting those beeves out of the
river."</p>
<p>It was impossible to bring them back, and the only alternative was
attempted. About three quarters of a mile down the river the cut-bank
shifted to the south side. If the cattle could swim that distance there
was an easy landing below. The beeves belonged to Forrest's herd, and I
declined the proffered leadership, but plans were outlined and we started
the work of rescue. Only a few men were left to look after the main herds,
the remainder of us swimming the river on our horses. One man was detailed
to drive the contingent which had safely forded, down to the point where
the bluff bank shifted and the incline commenced on the north shore. The
cattle were clinging, in small bunches, under the cut-bank like swallows
to a roof for fully a quarter-mile below the mouth of the dry wash.
Divesting ourselves of all clothing, a squad of six of us, by way of
experiment, dropped over the bank and pushed into the river about twenty
of the lowest cattle. On catching the full force of the current, which ran
like a mill-race, we swept downstream at a rapid pace, sometimes clinging
to a beef's tail, but generally swimming between the cattle and the bluff.
The force of the stream drove them against the bank repeatedly, but we
dashed water in their eyes and pushed them off again and again, and
finally landed every steer.</p>
<p>The Big Cheyenne was a mountain stream, having numerous tributaries
heading in the Black Hills. The water was none too warm, and when we came
out the air chilled us; but we scaled the bluff and raced back after more
cattle. Forrest was in the river on our return, but I ordered his wrangler
to drive all the horses under saddle down to the landing, in order that
the men could have mounts for returning. This expedited matters, and the
work progressed more rapidly. Four separate squads were drifting the
cattle, but in the third contingent we cut off too many beeves and came
near drowning two fine ones. The animals in question were large and
strong, but had stood for nearly an hour on a slippery ledge, frequently
being crowded into the water, and were on the verge of collapse from
nervous exhaustion. They were trembling like leaves when we pushed them
off. Runt Pickett was detailed to look especially after those two, and the
little rascal nursed and toyed and played with them like a circus rider.
They struggled constantly for the inshore, but Runt rode their rumps
alternately, the displacement lifting their heads out of the water to good
advantage. When we finally landed, the two big fellows staggered out of
the river and dropped down through sheer weakness, a thing which I had
never seen before except in wild horses.</p>
<p>A number of the boys were attacked by chills, and towards evening had to
be excused for fear of cramps. By six o'clock we were reduced to two
squads, with about fifty cattle still remaining in the river. Forrest and
I had quit the water after the fourth trip; but Quince had a man named De
Manse, a Frenchman, who swam like a wharf-rat and who stayed to the
finish, while I turned my crew over to Runt Pickett. The latter was raised
on the coast of Texas, and when a mere boy could swim all day, with or
without occasion. Dividing the remaining beeves as near equally as
possible, Runt's squad pushed off slightly in advance of De Manse, the
remainder of us riding along the bank with the horses and clothing, and
cheering our respective crews. The Frenchman was but a moment later in
taking the water, and as pretty and thrilling a race as I ever witnessed
was in progress. The latter practiced a trick, when catching a favorable
current, of dipping the rump of a steer, thus lifting his fore parts and
rocking him forward like a porpoise. When a beef dropped to the rear, this
process was resorted to, and De Manse promised to overtake Pickett. From
our position on the bank, we shouted to Runt to dip his drag cattle in
swift water; but amid the din and splash of the struggling swimmers our
messages failed to reach his ears. De Manse was gaining slowly, when
Pickett's bunch were driven inshore, a number of them catching a footing,
and before they could be again pushed off, the Frenchman's cattle were at
their heels. A number of De Manse's men were swimming shoreward of their
charges, and succeeded in holding their beeves off the ledge, which was
the last one before the landing. The remaining hundred yards was eddy
water; and though Pickett fought hard, swimming among the Frenchman's lead
cattle, to hold the two bunches separate, they mixed in the river. As an
evidence of victory, however, when the cattle struck a foothold, Runt and
each of his men mounted a beef and rode out of the water some distance. As
the steers recovered and attempted to dislodge their riders, they nimbly
sprang from their backs and hustled themselves into their ragged clothing.</p>
<p>I breathed easier after the last cattle landed, though Forrest contended
there was never any danger. At least a serious predicament had been
blundered into and handled, as was shown by subsequent events. At noon
that day, rumblings of thunder were heard in the Black Hills country to
the west, a warning to get across the river as soon as possible. So the
situation at the close of the day was not a very encouraging one to either
Forrest or myself. The former had his cattle split in two bunches, while I
had my wagon and remuda on the other side of the river from my herd. But
the emergency must be met. I sent a messenger after our wagon, it was
brought back near the river, and a hasty supper was ordered. Two of my
boys were sent up to the dry wash to recross the river and drift our
cattle down somewhere near the wagon-crossing, thus separating the herds
for the night. I have never made claim to being overbright, but that
evening I did have sense or intuition enough to take our saddle horses
back across the river. My few years of trail life had taught me the
importance of keeping in close touch with our base of subsistence, while
the cattle and the saddle stock for handling them should under no
circumstances ever be separated. Yet under existing conditions it was
impossible to recross our commissary, and darkness fell upon us encamped
on the south side of the Big Cheyenne.</p>
<p>The night passed with almost constant thunder and lightning in the west.
At daybreak heavy dark clouds hung low in a semicircle all around the
northwest, threatening falling weather, and hasty preparations were made
to move down the stream in search of a crossing. In fording the river to
breakfast, my outfit agreed that there had been no perceptible change in
the stage of water overnight, which quickened our desire to move at once.
The two wagons were camped close together, and as usual Forrest was
indifferent and unconcerned over the threatening weather; he had left his
remuda all night on the north side of the river, and had actually turned
loose the rescued contingent of cattle. I did not mince my words in giving
Mr. Forrest my programme, when he turned on me, saying: "Quirk, you have
more trouble than a married woman. What do I care if it is raining in
London or the Black Hills either? Let her rain; our sugar and salt are
both covered, and we can lend you some if yours gets wet. But you go right
ahead and follow up Sponsilier; he may not find a crossing this side of
the Belle Fourche. I can take spades and axes, and in two hours' time cut
down and widen that wagon-way until the herds can cross. I wouldn't be as
fidgety as you are for a large farm. You ought to take something for your
nerves."</p>
<p>I had a mental picture of John Quincy Forrest doing any manual labor with
an axe or spade. During our short acquaintance that had been put to the
test too often to admit of question; but I encouraged him to fly right at
the bank, assuring him that in case his tools became heated, there was
always water at hand to cool them. The wrangler had rustled in the
wagon-mules for our cook, and Forrest was still ridiculing my anxiety to
move, when a fusillade of shots was heard across and up the river. Every
man at both wagons was on his feet in an instant, not one of us even
dreaming that the firing of the boys on herd was a warning, when Quince's
horsewrangler galloped up and announced a flood-wave coming down the
river. A rush was made for our horses, and we struck for the ford, dashing
through the shallows and up the farther bank without drawing rein. With a
steady rush, a body of water, less than a mile distant, greeted our
vision, looking like the falls of some river, rolling forward like an
immense cylinder. We sat our horses in bewilderment of the scene, though I
had often heard Jim Flood describe the sudden rise of streams which had
mountain tributaries. Forrest and his men crossed behind us, leaving but
the cooks and a horse-wrangler on the farther side. It was easily to be
seen that all the lowlands along the river would be inundated, so I sent
Levering back with orders to hook up the team and strike for tall timber.
Following suit, Forrest sent two men to rout the contingent of cattle out
of a bend which was nearly a mile below the wagons. The wave, apparently
ten to twelve feet high, moved forward slowly, great walls lopping off on
the side and flooding out over the bottoms, while on the farther shore
every cranny and arroyo claimed its fill from the avalanche of water. The
cattle on the south side were safe, grazing well back on the uplands, so
we gave the oncoming flood our undivided attention. It was traveling at
the rate of eight to ten miles an hour, not at a steady pace, but
sometimes almost halting when the bottoms absorbed its volume, only to
catch its breath and forge ahead again in angry impetuosity. As the water
passed us on the bluff bank, several waves broke over and washed around
our horses' feet, filling the wagon-way, but the main volume rolled across
the narrow valley on the opposite side. The wagons had pulled out to
higher ground, and while every eye was strained, watching for the rescued
beeves to come out of the bend below, Vick Wolf, who happened to look
upstream, uttered a single shout of warning and dashed away. Turning in
our saddles, we saw within five hundred feet of us a second wave about
half the height of the first one. Rowels and quirts were plied with energy
and will, as we tore down the river-bank, making a gradual circle until
the second bottoms were reached, outriding the flood by a close margin.</p>
<p>The situation was anything but encouraging, as days might elapse before
the water would fall. But our hopes revived as we saw the contingent of
about six hundred beeves stampede out of a bend below and across the
river, followed by two men who were energetically burning powder and
flaunting slickers in their rear. Within a quarter of an hour, a halfmile
of roaring, raging torrent, filled with floating driftwood, separated us
from the wagons which contained the staples of life. But in the midst of
the travail of mountain and plain, the dry humor of the men was
irrepressible, one of Forrest's own boys asking him if he felt any
uneasiness now about his salt and sugar.</p>
<p>"Oh, this is nothing," replied Quince, with a contemptuous wave of his
hand. "These freshets are liable to happen at any time; rise in an hour
and fall in half a day. Look there how it is clearing off in the west; the
river will be fordable this evening or in the morning at the furthest. As
long as everything is safe, what do we care? If it comes to a pinch, we
have plenty of stray beef; berries are ripe, and I reckon if we cast
around we might find some wild onions. I have lived a whole month at a
time on nothing but land-terrapin; they make larruping fine eating when
you are cut off from camp this way. Blankets? Never use them; sleep on
your belly and cover with your back, and get up with the birds in the
morning. These Lovell outfits are getting so tony that by another year or
two they'll insist on bathtubs, Florida water, and towels with every
wagon. I like to get down to straight beans for a few days every once in a
while; it has a tendency to cure a man with a whining disposition. The
only thing that's worrying me, if we get cut off, is the laugh that
Sponsilier will have on us."</p>
<p>We all knew Forrest was bluffing. The fact that we were water-bound was
too apparent to admit of question, and since the elements were beyond our
control, there was no telling when relief would come. Until the weather
moderated in the hills to the west, there was no hope of crossing the
river; but men grew hungry and nights were chilly, and bluster and bravado
brought neither food nor warmth. A third wave was noticed within an hour,
raising the water-gauge over a foot. The South Fork of the Big Cheyenne
almost encircled the entire Black Hills country, and with a hundred
mountain affluents emptying in their tribute, the waters commanded and we
obeyed. Ordering my men to kill a beef, I rode down the river in the hope
of finding Sponsilier on our side, and about noon sighted his camp and
cattle on the opposite bank. A group of men were dallying along the shore,
but being out of hearing, I turned back without exposing myself.</p>
<p>On my return a general camp had been established at the nearest wood, and
a stray killed. Stakes were driven to mark the rise or fall of the water,
and we settled down like prisoners, waiting for an expected reprieve.
Towards evening a fire was built up and the two sides of ribs were spitted
over it, our only chance for supper. Night fell with no perceptible change
in the situation, the weather remaining dry and clear. Forrest's outfit
had been furnished horses from my remuda for guard duty, and about
midnight, wrapping ourselves in slickers, we lay down in a circle with our
feet to the fire like cave-dwellers. The camp-fire was kept up all night
by the returning guards, even until the morning hours, when we woke up
shivering at dawn and hurried away to note the stage of the water. A
four-foot fall had taken place during the night, another foot was added
within an hour after sun-up, brightening our hopes, when a tidal wave
swept down the valley, easily establishing a new high-water mark. Then we
breakfasted on broiled beefsteak, and fell back into the hills in search
of the huckleberry, which abounded in that vicinity.</p>
<p>A second day and night passed, with the water gradually falling. The third
morning a few of the best swimmers, tiring of the diet of beef and
berries, took advantage of the current and swam to the other shore. On
returning several hours later, they brought back word that Sponsilier had
been up to the wagons the afternoon before and reported an easy crossing
about five miles below. By noon the channel had narrowed to one hundred
yards of swimming water, and plunging into it on our horses, we dined at
the wagons and did justice to the spread. Both outfits were anxious to
move, and once dinner was over, the commissaries were started down the
river, while we turned up it, looking for a chance to swim back to the
cattle. Forrest had secured a fresh mount of horses, and some distance
above the dry wash we again took to the water, landing on the opposite
side between a quarter and half mile below. Little time was lost in
starting the herds, mine in the lead, while the wagons got away well in
advance, accompanied by Forrest's remuda and the isolated contingent of
cattle.</p>
<p>Sponsilier was expecting us, and on the appearance of our wagons, moved
out to a new camp and gave us a clear crossing. A number of the boys came
down to the river with him, and several of them swam it, meeting the
cattle a mile above and piloting us into the ford. They had assured me
that there might be seventy-five yards of swimming water, with a gradual
entrance to the channel and a half-mile of solid footing at the outcome.
The description of the crossing suited me, and putting our remuda in the
lead, we struck the muddy torrent and crossed it without a halt, the chain
of swimming cattle never breaking for a single moment. Forrest followed in
our wake, the one herd piloting the other, and within an hour after our
arrival at the lower ford, the drag-end of the "Drooping T" herd kicked up
their heels on the north bank of the Big Cheyenne. Meanwhile Sponsilier
had been quietly sitting his horse below the main landing, his hat pulled
down over his eye, nursing the humor of the situation. As Forrest came up
out of the water with the rear guard of his cattle, the opportunity was
too good to be overlooked.</p>
<p>"Hello, Quince," said Dave; "how goes it, old sport? Do you keep stout? I
was up at your wagon yesterday to ask you all down to supper. Yes, we had
huckleberry pie and venison galore, but your men told me that you had quit
eating with the wagon. I was pained to hear that you and Tom have both
gone plum hog-wild, drinking out of cowtracks and living on wild garlic
and land-terrapin, just like Injuns. Honest, boys, I hate to see good men
go wrong that way."</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2HCH0018" id="link2HCH0018"></SPAN></p>
<br/>
<h2> CHAPTER XVIII. THE LITTLE MISSOURI </h2>
<p>A week later we crossed the Belle Fourche, sometimes called the North Fork
of the Big Cheyenne. Like its twin sister on the south, it was a mountain
river, having numerous affluents putting in from the Black Hills, which it
encircled on the north and west. Between these two branches of the mother
stream were numerous tributaries, establishing it as the best watered
country encountered in our long overland cruise. Besides the splendid
watercourses which marked that section, numerous wagontrails, leading into
the hills, were peopled with freighters. Long ox trains, moving at a
snail's pace, crept over hill and plain, the common carrier between the
mines and the outside world. The fascination of the primal land was there;
the buttes stood like sentinels, guarding a king's domain, while the
palisaded cliffs frowned down, as if erected by the hand Omnipotent to
mark the boundary of nations.</p>
<p>Our route, after skirting the Black Hills, followed up the Belle Fourche a
few days, and early in August we crossed over to the Little Missouri
River. The divide between the Belle Fourche and the latter stream was a
narrow one, requiring little time to graze across it, and intercepting the
Little Missouri somewhere in Montana. The course of that river was almost
due north, and crossing and recrossing it frequently, we kept constantly
in touch with it on our last northward tack. The river led through
sections of country now known as the Bad Lands, but we found an abundance
of grass and an easy passage. Sponsilier held the lead all the way down
the river, though I did most of the advance scouting, sometimes being as
much as fifty miles in front of the herds. Near the last of the month we
sighted Sentinel Butte and the smoke of railroad trains, and a few days
later all three of us foremen rode into Little Missouri Station of the
Northern Pacific Railway. Our arrival was expected by one man at least;
for as we approached the straggling village, our employer was recognized
at a distance, waving his hat, and a minute later all three of us were
shaking hands with Don Lovell. Mutual inquiries followed, and when we
reported the cattle fine as silk, having never known a hungry or thirsty
hour after leaving the North Platte, the old man brightened and led the
way to a well-known saloon.</p>
<p>"How did I fare at Omaha?" said old man Don, repeating Forrest's query.
"Well, at first it was a question if I would be hung or shot, but we came
out with colors flying. The United States marshal who attempted to take
possession of the cattle on the North Platte went back on the same train
with us. He was feeling sore over his defeat, but Sutton cultivated his
acquaintance, and in mollifying that official, showed him how easily
failure could be palmed off as a victory. In fact, I think Mike
overcolored the story at my expense. He and the marshal gave it to the
papers, and the next morning it appeared in the form of a sensational
article. According to the report, a certain popular federal officer had
gone out to Ogalalla to take possession of two herds of cattle intended
for government purposes; he had met with resistance by a lot of Texas
roughs, who fatally shot one of his deputies, wounding several others, and
killing a number of horses during the assault; but the intrepid officer
had added to his laurels by arresting the owner of the cattle and leader
of the resisting mob, and had brought him back to face the charge of
contempt in resisting service. The papers freely predicted that I would
get the maximum fine, and one even went so far as to suggest that
imprisonment might teach certain arrogant cattle kings a salutary lesson.
But when the hearing came up, Sutton placed Jim Reed and me in the
witness-box, taking the stand later himself, and we showed that federal
court that it had been buncoed out of an order of injunctive relief, in
favor of the biggest set of ringsters that ever missed stretching hemp.
The result was, I walked out of that federal court scot free. And Judge
Dundy, when he realized the injustice that he had inflicted, made all
three of us take dinner with him, fully explaining the pressure which had
been brought to bear at the time the order of relief was issued. Oh, that
old judge was all right. I only hope we'll have as square a man as Judge
Dundy at the final hearing at Fort Buford. Do you see that sign over
there, where it says Barley Water and Bad Cigars? Well, put your horses in
some corral and meet me there."</p>
<p>There was a great deal of news to review. Lovell had returned to Ogalalla;
the body of Tolleston had been recovered and given decent burial; delivery
day of the three Indian herds was at hand, bringing that branch of the
season's drive to a close. But the main thing which absorbed our employer
was the quarantine that the upper Yellowstone country proposed enforcing
against through Texas cattle. He assured us that had we gone by way of
Wyoming and down the Powder River, the chances were that the local
authorities would have placed us under quarantine until after the first
frost. He assured us that the year before, Texas fever had played sad
havoc among the native and wintered Southern cattle, and that Miles City
and Glendive, live-stock centres on the Yellowstone, were up in arms in
favor of a rigid quarantine against all through cattle. If this proved
true, it was certainly an ill wind to drovers on the Powder River route;
yet I failed to see where we were benefited until my employer got down to
details.</p>
<p>"That's so," said he; "I forgot to tell you boys that when Reed and I went
back to Ogalalla, we found Field, Radcliff & Co. buying beeves. Yes,
they had bought a remuda of horses, rigged up two wagons, and hired men to
take possession of our 'Open A' and 'Drooping T' herds. But meeting with
disappointment and having the outfit on their hands, they concluded to buy
cattle and go ahead and make the delivery at Buford. They simply had to do
it or admit that I had called their hands. But Reed and I raised such a
howl around that town that we posted every man with beeves for sale until
the buyers had to pony up the cash for every hoof they bought. We even
hunted up young Murnane, the seller of the herd that Jim Reed ran the
attachment on; and before old Jim and I got through with him, we had his
promise not to move out of Keith County until the last dollar was in hand.
The buyers seemed to command all kinds of money, but where they expect to
make anything, even if they do deliver, beats me, as Reed and I have got a
good wad of their money. Since leaving there, I have had word that they
settled with Murnane, putting a new outfit with the cattle, and that they
have ten thousand beef steers on the way to Fort Buford this very minute.
They are coming through on the North Platte and Powder River route, and if
quarantine can be enforced against them until frost falls, it will give us
a clear field at Buford on the day of delivery. Now it stands us in hand
to see that those herds are isolated until after the 15th day of
September."</p>
<p>The atmosphere cleared instantly. I was well aware of the ravages of
splenic fever; but two decades ago every drover from Texas denied the
possibility of a through animal in perfect health giving a disease to
wintered Southerners or domestic cattle, also robust and healthy. Time has
demonstrated the truth, yet the manner in which the germ is transmitted
between healthy animals remains a mystery to this day, although there has
been no lack of theories advanced. Even the theorists differed as to the
manner of germ transmission, the sporule, tick, and ship fever being the
leading theories, and each having its advocates. The latter was entitled
to some consideration, for if bad usage and the lack of necessary rest,
food, and water will produce fever aboard emigrant steamships, the same
privations might do it among animals. The overdriving of trail cattle was
frequently unavoidable, dry drives and the lack of grass on arid wastes
being of common occurrence. However, the presence of fever among through
cattle was never noticeable to the practical man, and if it existed, it
must have been very mild in form compared to its virulent nature among
natives. Time has demonstrated that it is necessary for the domestic
animals to walk over and occupy the same ground to contract the disease,
though they may drink from the same trough or stream of water, or inhale
each other's breath in play across a wire fence, without fear of
contagion. A peculiar feature of Texas fever was that the very cattle
which would impart it on their arrival, after wintering in the North would
contract it and die the same as natives. The isolation of herds on a good
range for a period of sixty days, or the falling of frost, was recognized
as the only preventive against transmitting the germ. Government rewards
and experiments have never demonstrated a theory that practical experience
does not dispute.</p>
<p>The only time on this drive that our attention had been called to the
fever alarm was on crossing the wagon trail running from Pierre on the
Missouri River to the Black Hills. I was in the lead when a large bull
train was sighted in our front, and shortly afterward the wagon-boss met
me and earnestly begged that I allow his outfit to pass before we crossed
the wagon-road. I knew the usual form of ridicule of a herd foreman, but
the boss bull-whacker must have anticipated my reply, for he informed me
that the summer before he had lost ninety head out of two hundred yoke of
oxen. The wagon-master's appeal was fortified by a sincerity which won his
request, and I held up my cattle and allowed his train to pass in advance.
Sponsilier's herd was out of sight in my rear, while Forrest was several
miles to my left, and slightly behind me. The wagon-boss rode across and
made a similar request of Forrest, but that worthy refused to recognize
the right of way to a bull train at the expense of a trail herd of
government beeves. Ungentlemanly remarks are said to have passed between
them, when the boss bull-whacker threw down the gauntlet and galloped back
to his train. Forrest pushed on, with ample time to have occupied the road
in crossing, thus holding up the wagon train. My herd fell to grazing, and
Sponsilier rode up to inquire the cause of my halting. I explained the
request of the wagon-master, his loss the year before and present fear of
fever, and called attention to the clash which was imminent between the
long freight outfit in our front and Forrest's herd to the left, both
anxious for the right of way. A number of us rode forward in clear view of
the impending meeting. It was evident that Forrest would be the first to
reach the freight road, and would naturally hold it while his cattle were
crossing it. But when this also became apparent to the bull train, the
lead teams drove out of the road and halted, the rear wagons passing on
ahead, the two outfits being fully a mile apart. There were about twenty
teams of ten yoke each, and when the first five or six halted, they
unearthed old needle rifles and opened fire across Forrest's front. Once
the range was found, those long-range buffalo guns threw up the dust in
handfuls in the lead of the herd, and Forrest turned his cattle back,
while the bull train held its way, undisputed. It was immaterial to
Forrest who occupied the road first, and with the jeers of the freighters
mingled the laughter of Sponsilier and my outfit, as John Quincy Forrest
reluctantly turned back.</p>
<p>This incident served as a safety-valve, and whenever Forrest forged to the
lead in coming down the Little Missouri, all that was necessary to check
him was to inquire casually which held the right of way, a trail herd or a
bull train.</p>
<p>Throughout the North, Texas fever was generally accepted as a fact, and
any one who had ever come in contact with it once, dreaded it ever
afterward. So when the devil was sick the devil a monk would be; and if
there was any advantage in taking the contrary view to the one entertained
by all drovers, so long as our herds were free, we were not like men who
could not experience a change of opinion, if in doing so the wind was
tempered to us. Also in this instance we were fighting an avowed enemy,
and all is fair in love and war. And amid the fumes of bad cigars,
Sponsilier drew out the plan of campaign.</p>
<p>"Now, let's see," said old man Don, "tomorrow will be the 25th day of
August. I've got to be at the Crow Agency a few days before the 10th of
next month, as you know we have a delivery there on that date. Flood will
have to attend to matters at Rosebud on the 1st, and then hurry on west
and be present at Paul's delivery at Fort Washakie. So you see I'll have
to depend on two of you boys going up to Glendive and Miles and seeing
that those cow-towns take the proper view of this quarantine matter. After
dinner you'll fall back and bring up your herds, and after crossing the
railroad here, the outfits will graze over to Buford. We'll leave four of
our best saddle horses here in a pasture, so as to be independent on our
return. Since things have changed so, the chances are that I'll bring Bob
Quirk back with me, as I've written Flood to help The Rebel sell his
remuda and take the outfit and go home. Now you boys decide among
yourselves which two of you will go up the Yellowstone and promote the
enforcement of the quarantine laws. Don't get the impression that you
can't do this, because an all-round cowman can do anything where his
interests are at stake. I'll think the programme out a little more clearly
by the time you bring up the cattle."</p>
<p>The herds were not over fifteen miles back up the river when we left them
in the morning. After honoring the village of Little Missouri with our
presence for several hours, we saddled up and started to meet the cattle.
There was no doubt in my mind but that Sponsilier would be one of the two
to go on the proposed errand of diplomacy, as his years, experience, and
good solid sense entitled him to outrank either Forrest or myself. I knew
that Quince would want to go, if for no other reason than to get out of
working the few days that yet remained of the drive. All three of us
talked the matter of quarantine freely as we rode along, yet no one
ventured any proposition looking to an agreement as to who should go on
the diplomatic mission. I was the youngest and naturally took refuge
behind my years, yet perfectly conscious that, in spite of the indifferent
and nonchalant attitude assumed, all three of us foremen were equally
anxious for the chance. Matters remained undecided; but the next day at
dinner, Lovell having met us before reaching the railroad, the question
arose who should go up to Miles City. Dave and Quince were also eating at
my wagon, and when our employer forced an answer, Sponsilier innocently
replied that he supposed that we were all willing to leave it to him.
Forrest immediately approved of Dave's suggestion. I gave my assent, and
old man Don didn't qualify, hedge, or mince his words in appointing the
committees to represent the firm of Lovell.</p>
<p>"Jealous of each other, ain't you? Very well; I want these herds grazed
across to Buford at the rate of four miles a day. Nothing but a Mexican
pastor, or a white man as lazy as Quince Forrest can fill the bill. You're
listening, are you, Quince? Well, after the sun sets to-night, you're in
charge of ten thousand beeves from here to the mouth of the Yellowstone. I
want to put every ounce possible on those steers for the next twenty days.
We may have to make a comparison of cattle, and if we should, I want ours
to lay over the opposition like a double eagle does over a lead dime. We
may run up against a lot of red tape at Fort Buford, but if there is a
lick of cow-sense among the government representatives, we want our beeves
to speak for themselves. Fat animals do their own talking. You remember
when every one was admiring the fine horse, the blind man said, 'Isn't he
fat?' Now, Dave, you and Tom appoint your segundos, and we'll all catch
the 10:20 train west to-night."</p>
<p>I dared to risk one eye on Forrest. Inwardly I was chuckling, but Quince
was mincing along with his dinner, showing that languid indifference which
is inborn to the Texan. Lovell continued to monopolize the conversation,
blowing on the cattle and ribbing up Forrest to see that the beeves
thenceforth should never know tire, hunger, or thirst. The commissaries
had run low; Sponsilier's cook had been borrowing beans from us for a week
past, while Parent point-blank refused to share any more of our bacon. The
latter was recognized as a staple in trail-work, and it mattered not how
inviting the beef or venison might be, we always fell back to bacon with
avidity. When it came time to move out on the evening lap, Forrest's herd
took the lead, the other two falling in behind, the wagons pulling out for
town in advance of everything. Jack Splann had always acted as segundo in
my absence, and as he had overheard Lovell's orders to Forrest, there was
nothing further for me to add, and Splann took charge of my "Open A's."</p>
<p>When changing mounts at noon, I caught out two of my best saddlers and
tied one behind the chuckwagon, to be left with a liveryman in town.
Leaving old man Don with the cattle, all three of us foremen went into the
village in order to secure a few staple supplies with which to complete
the journey.</p>
<p>It can be taken for granted that Sponsilier and myself were feeling quite
gala. The former took occasion, as we rode along, to throw several
bouquets at Forrest over his preferment, when the latter turned on us,
saying: "You fellows think you're d—d smart, now, don't you? You're
both purty good talkers, but neither one of you can show me where the
rainbow comes in in rotting along with these measly cattle. It's enough to
make a man kick his own dog. But I can see where the old man was perfectly
right in sending you two up to Miles City. When you fellows work your
rabbit's foot, it will be Katy with those Washington City schemers—more
than likely they'll not draw cards when they see that you are in the game—When
it comes to the real sabe, you fellows shine like a tree full of owls.
Honest, it has always been a wonder to me that Grant didn't send for both
of you when he was making up his cabinet."</p>
<p>The herds crossed the railroad about a mile west of Little Missouri
Station. The wagons secured the needed supplies, and pulled out down the
river, leaving Sponsilier and myself foot-loose and free.</p>
<p>Lovell was riding a livery horse, and as neither of us expected him to
return until it was too dark to see the cattle, we amused ourselves by
looking over the town. There seemed to be a great deal of freighting to
outlying points, numerous ox and mule trains coming in and also leaving
for their destinations. Our employer came in about dusk, and at once went
to the depot, as he was expecting a message. One had arrived during his
absence, and after reading it, he came over to Dave and me, saying:</p>
<p>"It's from Mike Sutton. I authorized him to secure the services of the
best lawyer in the West, and he has just wired me that he has retained
Senator Aspgrain of Sioux City, Iowa. They will report at Fort Buford on
September the 5th and will take care of any legal complications which may
arise. I don't know who this senator is, but Mike has orders not to spare
any expense as long as we have the other fellow's money to fight with.
Well, if the Iowa lawyers are as good stuff as the Iowa troops were down
in Dixie, that's all I ask. Now, we'll get our suppers and then sack our
saddles—why, sure, you'll need them; every good cowman takes his
saddle wherever he goes, though he may not have clothes enough with him to
dust a fiddle."</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2HCH0019" id="link2HCH0019"></SPAN></p>
<br/>
<h2> CHAPTER XIX. IN QUARANTINE </h2>
<p>We reached Miles City shortly after midnight. It was the recognized cattle
centre of Montana at that time, but devoid of the high-lights which were a
feature of the trail towns. The village boasted the usual number of
saloons and dance-houses, and likewise an ordinance compelling such
resorts to close on the stroke of twelve. Lovell had been there before,
and led the way to a well-known hostelry. The house was crowded, and the
best the night clerk could do was to give us a room with two beds. This
was perfectly satisfactory, as it was a large apartment and fronted out on
an open gallery. Old man Don suggested we take the mattresses outside, but
as this was my first chance to sleep in a bed since leaving the ranch in
March, I wanted all the comforts that were due me. Sponsilier likewise
favored the idea of sleeping inside, and our employer yielded, taking the
single bed on retiring. The night was warm, and after thrashing around for
nearly an hour, supposing that Dave and I were asleep, old man Don arose
and quietly dragged his mattress outside. Our bed was soft and downy, but
in spite of the lateness of the hour and having been in our saddles at
dawn, we tossed about, unable to sleep. After agreeing that it was the
mattress, we took the covering and pillows and lay down on the floor,
falling into a deep slumber almost instantly. "Well, wouldn't that jar
your eccentric," said Dave to me the next morning, speaking of our
inability to sleep in a bed. "I slept in one in Ogalalla, and I wasn't
over-full either."</p>
<p>Lovell remained with us all the next day. He was well known in Miles City,
having in other years sold cattle to resident cowmen. The day was spent in
hunting up former acquaintances, getting the lay of the land, and feeling
the public pulse on the matter of quarantine on Southern cattle. The
outlook was to our liking, as heavy losses had been sustained from fever
the year before, and steps had already been taken to isolate all through
animals until frost fell. Report was abroad that there were already within
the jurisdiction of Montana over one hundred and fifty thousand through
Texas cattle, with a possibility of one third that number more being added
before the close of the season. That territory had established a
quarantine camp on the Wyoming line, forcing all Texas stock to follow
down the eastern side of the Powder River. Fully one hundred miles on the
north, a dead-line was drawn from Powderville on that watercourse eastward
to a spur of the Powder River Mountains, thus setting aside a quarantine
ground ample to accommodate half a million cattle. Local range-riders kept
all the native and wintered Texas cattle to the westward of the river and
away from the through ones, which was easily done by riding lines, the
Southern herds being held under constant control and hence never straying.
The first Texas herds to arrive naturally traveled north to the dead-line,
and, choosing a range, went into camp until frost relieved them. It was an
unwritten law that a herd was entitled to as much grazing land as it
needed, and there was a report about Miles City that the quarantine ground
was congested with cattle halfway from Powderville to the Wyoming line.</p>
<p>The outlook was encouraging. Quarantine was working a hardship to herds
along the old Powder River route, yet their enforced isolation was like a
tempered wind to our cause and cattle, the latter then leisurely grazing
across Dakota from the Little Missouri to the mouth of the Yellowstone.
Fortune favored us in many respects. About Miles City there was no
concealment of our mission, resulting in an old acquaintance of Lovell's
loaning us horses, while old man Don had no trouble in getting drafts
cashed to the amount of two thousand dollars. What he expected to do with
this amount of money was a mystery to Dave and myself, a mystery which
instantly cleared when we were in the privacy of our room at the hotel.</p>
<p>"Here, boys," said old man Don, throwing the roll of money on the bed,
"divide this wad between you. There might be such a thing as using a
little here and there to sweeten matters up, and making yourselves
rattling good fellows wherever you go. Now in the first place, I want you
both to understand that this money is clear velvet, and don't hesitate to
spend it freely. Eat and drink all you can, and gamble a little of it if
that is necessary. You two will saddle up in the morning and ride to
Powderville, while I will lie around here a few days and try the market
for cattle next year, and then go on to Big Horn on my way to the Crow
Agency. Feel your way carefully; locate the herds of Field, Radcliff &
Co., and throw everything in their way to retard progress. It is
impossible to foretell what may happen, and for that reason only general
orders can be given. And remember, I don't want to see that money again if
there is any chance to use it."</p>
<p>Powderville was a long day's ride from Miles City. By making an early
start and resting a few hours at noon, we reached that straggling outpost
shortly after nightfall. There was a road-house for the wayfaring man and
a corral for his beast, a general store, opposition saloons, and the
regulation blacksmith shop, constituting the business interests of
Powderville. As arriving guests, a rough but cordial welcome was extended
us by the keeper of the hostelry, and we mingled with the other travelers,
but never once mentioning our business. I was uneasy over the money in our
possession; not that I feared robbery, but my mind constantly reverted to
it, and it was with difficulty that I refrained from continually feeling
to see that it was safe. Sponsilier had concealed his in his boot, and as
we rode along, contended that he could feel the roll chafing his ankle. I
had tied two handkerchiefs together, and rolling my share in one of them,
belted the amount between my overshirt and undershirt. The belt was not
noticeable, but in making the ride that day, my hand involuntarily went to
my side where the money lay, the action never escaping the notice of
Sponsilier, who constantly twitted me over my nervousness. And although we
were tired as dogs after our long ride, I awoke many times that night and
felt to see if my money was safe; my partner slept like a log.</p>
<p>Several cowmen, ranching on the lower Powder River, had headquarters at
this outpost. The next morning Sponsilier and I made their acquaintance,
and during the course of the day got a clear outline of the situation. On
the west the river was the recognized dead-line to the Wyoming boundary,
while two camps of five men each patroled the dividing line on the north,
drifting back the native stock and holding the through herds in
quarantine. The nearest camp was some distance east of Powderville, and
saddling up towards evening we rode out and spent the night at the first
quarantine station. A wagon and two tents, a relay of saddle horses, and
an arsenal of long-range firearms composed the outfit. Three of the five
men on duty were Texans. Making ourselves perfectly at home, we had no
trouble in locating the herds in question, they having already sounded the
tocsin to clear the way, claiming government beef recognized no local
quarantine. The herds were not over thirty miles to the south, and
expectation ran high as to results when an attempt should be made to cross
the deadline. Trouble had already occurred, where outfits respecting the
quarantine were trespassed upon by three herds, making claim of being
under government protection and entitled to the rights of eminent domain.
Fortunately several of the herds on the immediate line had been bought at
Ogalalla and were in possession of ranch outfits who owned ranges farther
north, and were anxious to see quarantine enforced. These local cowmen
would support the established authority, and trouble was expected.
Sponsilier and I widened the breach by denouncing these intruders as the
hirelings of a set of ringsters, who had no regard for the rights of any
one, and volunteered our services in enforcing quarantine against them the
same as others.</p>
<p>Our services were gratefully accepted. The next morning we were furnished
fresh horses, and one of us was requested, as we were strangers, to ride
down the country and reconnoitre the advance of the defiant drovers. As I
was fearful that Field or Radcliff might be accompanying the herds, and
recognize me, Sponsilier went instead, returning late that evening.</p>
<p>"Well, fellows," said Dave, as he dismounted at the quarantine camp, "I've
seen the herds, and they propose to cross this dead-line of yours as
easily as water goes through a gourd funnel. They'll be here by noon
to-morrow, and they've got the big conversation right on tap to show that
the government couldn't feed its army if it wasn't for a few big cowmen
like them. There's a strange corporal over the three herds and they're
working on five horses to the man. But the major-domo's the whole works;
he's a windy cuss, and intimates that he has a card or two up his sleeve
that will put these quarantine guards to sleep when he springs them. He's
a new man to me; at least he wasn't with the gang at Ogalalla."</p>
<p>During the absence of my partner, I had ridden the dead-line on the north.
A strip of country five miles wide was clear of cattle above the boundary,
while below were massed four herds, claiming the range from the mountains
to the Powder River. The leader of the quarantine guards, Fred Ullmer, had
accompanied me on the ride, and on our return we visited three of the
outfits, urging them to hold all their reserve forces subject to call, in
case an attempt was made to force the dead-line. At each camp I took every
possible chance to sow the seeds of dissension and hatred against the
high-handed methods of The Western Supply Company. Defining our situation
clearly, I asked each foreman, in case these herds defied local authority,
who would indemnify the owners for the loss among native cattle by fever
between Powderville and the mouth of the Yellowstone. Would the drovers?
Would the government? Leaving these and similar thoughts for their
consideration, Ullmer and I had arrived at the first quarantine station
shortly before the return of my partner.</p>
<p>Upon the report of Sponsilier, Ullmer was appointed captain, and lost no
time in taking action. After dark, a scout was sent to Camp No. 2, a
meeting-place was appointed on Wolf Creek below, and orders were given to
bring along every possible man from the local outfits and to meet at the
rendezvous within an hour after sun-up the next morning. Ullmer changed
horses and left for Powderville, assuring us that he would rally every man
interested in quarantine, and have his posse below, on the creek by
sunrise. The remainder of us at headquarters were under orders to bring
all the arms and ammunition, and join the quarantine forces at the
meeting-place some five miles from our camp. We were also to touch at and
command the presence of one of the four outfits while en route. I liked
the determined action of Captain Ullmer, who I learned had emigrated with
his parents to Montana when a boy, and had grown into manhood on the
frontier. Sponsilier was likewise pleased with the quarantine leader, and
we lay awake far into the night, reviewing the situation and trying to
anticipate any possible contingency that might thwart our plans. But to
our best reasoning the horizon was clear, and if Field, Radcliff &
Co.'s cattle reached Fort Buford on the day of delivery, well, it would be
a miracle.</p>
<p>Fresh horses were secured at dawn, and breakfast would be secured en route
with the cow outfit. There were a dozen large-calibre rifles in scabbards,
and burdening ourselves with two heavy guns to the man and an abundance of
ammunition, we abandoned Quarantine Station No. 1 for the time being. The
camp which we were to touch at was the one nearest the river and north of
Wolf Creek, and we galloped up to it before the sun had even risen. Since
everything was coming our way, Sponsilier and I observed a strict
neutrality, but a tow-headed Texan rallied the outfit, saying:</p>
<p>"Make haste, fellows, and saddle up your horses. Those three herds which
raised such a rumpus up on Little Powder have sent down word that they're
going to cross our dead-line to-day if they have to prize up hell and put
a chunk under it. We have decided to call their bluff before they even
reach the line, and make them show their hand for all this big talk.
Here's half a dozen guns and cartridges galore, but hustle yourselves.
Fred went into Powderville last night and will meet us above at the twin
buttes this morning with every cowman in town. All the other outfits have
been sent for, and we'll have enough men to make our bluff stand up, never
fear. From what I learn, these herds belong to a lot of Yankee
speculators, and they don't give a tinker's dam if all the cattle in
Montana die from fever. They're no better than anybody else, and if we
allow them to go through, they'll leave a trail of dead natives that will
stink us out of this valley. Make haste, everybody."</p>
<p>I could see at a glance that the young Texan had touched their pride. The
foreman detailed three men to look after the herd, and the balance made
hasty preparations to accompany the quarantine guards. A relief was rushed
away for the herders; and when the latter came in, they reported having
sighted the posse from Powderville, heading across country for the twin
buttes. Meanwhile a breakfast had been bolted by the guards, Sponsilier,
and myself, and swinging into our saddles, we rounded a bluff bend of the
creek and rode for the rendezvous, some three miles distant. I noticed by
the brands that nearly every horse in that country had been born in Texas,
and the short time in which we covered the intervening miles proved that
the change of climate had added to their stability and bottom. Our first
glimpse of the meeting-point revealed the summit of the buttes fairly
covered with horsemen. From their numbers it was evident that ours was the
last contingent to arrive; but before we reached the twin mounds, the
posse rode down from the lookout and a courier met and turned us from our
course. The lead herd had been sighted in trail formation but a few miles
distant, heading north, and it was the intention to head them at the
earliest moment. The messenger inquired our numbers, and reported those
arrived at forty-five, making the posse when united a few over sixty men.</p>
<p>A juncture of forces was effected within a mile of the lead herd. It was a
unique posse. Old frontiersmen, with patriarchal beards and sawed-off
shotguns, chewed their tobacco complacently as they rode forward at a
swinging gallop. Beardless youths, armed with the old buffalo guns of
their fathers, led the way as if an Indian invasion had called them forth.
Soldiers of fortune, with Southern accents, who were assisting in the
conquest of a new empire, intermingled with the hurrying throng, and two
men whose home was in Medina County, Texas, looked on and approved. The
very horses had caught the inspiration of the moment, champing bits in
their effort to forge to the front rank, while the blood-stained slaver
coated many breasts or driveled from our boots. Before we met the herd a
halt was called, and about a dozen men were deployed off on each flank,
while the main body awaited the arrival of the cattle. The latter were
checked by the point-men and turned back when within a few hundred yards
of the main posse. Several horsemen from the herd rode forward, and one
politely inquired the meaning of this demonstration. The question was met
by a counter one from Captain Ullmer, who demanded to know the reason why
these cattle should trespass on the rights of others and ignore local
quarantine. The spokesman in behalf of the herd turned in his saddle and
gave an order to send some certain person forward. Sponsilier whispered to
me that this fellow was merely a segundo. "But wait till the 'major-domo'
arrives," he added. The appearance of the posse and the halting of the
herd summoned that personage from the rear to the front, and the next
moment he was seen galloping up the column of cattle. With a plausible
smile this high mogul, on his arrival, repeated the previous question, and
on a similar demand from the captain of the posse, he broke into a jolly
laugh from which he recovered with difficulty.</p>
<p>"Why, gentlemen," said he, every word dripping with honeyed sweetness,
"this is entirely uncalled for. I assure you that it was purely an
oversight on my part that I did not send you word in advance that these
herds of mine are government cattle and not subject to local quarantine.
My associates are the largest army contractors in the country, these
cattle are due at Fort Buford on the 15th of this month, and any
interference on your part would be looked upon as an insult to the
government. In fact, the post commander at Fort Laramie insisted that he
be permitted to send a company of cavalry to escort us across Wyoming, and
assured us that a troop from Fort Keogh, if requested, would meet our
cattle on the Montana line. The army is jealous over its supplies, but I
declined all military protection, knowing that I had but to show my
credentials to pass unmolested anywhere. Now, if you care to look over
these papers, you will see that these cattle are en route to Fort Buford,
on an assignment of the original contract, issued by the secretary of war
to The Western Supply Company. Very sorry to put you to all this trouble,
but these herds must not be interfered with. I trust that you gentlemen
understand that the government is supreme."</p>
<p>As the papers mentioned were produced, Sponsilier kicked me on the shin,
gave me a quiet wink, and nodded towards the documents then being tendered
to Captain Ullmer. Groping at his idea, I rode forward, and as the papers
were being returned with a mere glance on the part of the quarantine
leader, I politely asked if I might see the assignment of the original
contract. But a quizzical smile met my request, and shaking out the heavy
parchment, he rapped it with the knuckles of his disengaged hand,
remarking as he returned it to his pocket, "Sorry, but altogether too
valuable to allow out of my possession." Just what I would have done with
the beribboned document, except to hand it over to Sponsilier, is beyond
me, yet I was vaguely conscious that its destruction was of importance to
our side of the matter at issue. At the same instant in which my request
was declined, the big medicine man turned to Captain Ullmer and suavely
remarked, "You found everything as represented, did you?"</p>
<p>"Why, I heard your statement, and I have also heard it disputed from other
sources. In fact I have nothing to do with you except to enforce the
quarantine now established by the cattlemen of eastern Montana. If you
have any papers showing that your herds were wintered north of latitude
37, you can pass, as this quarantine is only enforced against cattle from
south of that degree. This territory lost half a million dollars' worth of
native stock last fall from Texas fever, and this season they propose to
apply the ounce of preventive. You will have ample time to reach your
destination after frost falls, and your detention by quarantine will be a
good excuse for your delay. Now, unless you can convince me that your
herds are immune, I'll show you a good place to camp on the head of Wolf
Creek. It will probably be a matter of ten to fifteen days before the
quarantine is lifted, and we are enforcing it against citizens of Montana
and Texas alike, and no exception can be made in your case."</p>
<p>"But, my dear sir, this is not a local or personal matter. Whatever you
do, don't invite the frown of the government. Let me warn you not to act
in haste. Now, remember—"</p>
<p>"You made your cracks that you would cross this quarantine line,"
interrupted Ullmer, bristlingly, "and I want you to find out your mistake.
There is no occasion for further words, and you can either order your
outfit to turn your cattle east, or I'll send men and do it myself."</p>
<p>The "major-domo" turned and galloped back to his men, a number of whom had
congregated near at hand. The next moment he returned and haughtily
threatened to surrender the cattle then and there unless he was allowed to
proceed. "Give him a receipt for his beeves, Fred," quietly remarked an
old cowman, gently stroking his beard, "and I'll take these boys over here
on the right and start the cattle. That will be the safest way, unless the
gentleman can indemnify us. I lost ten thousand dollars' worth of stock
last fall, and as a citizen of Montana I have objections to leaving a
trail of fever from here to the mouth of the Yellowstone. And tell him he
can have a bond for his cattle," called back the old man as he rode out of
hearing.</p>
<p>The lead herd was pointed to the east, and squads of men rode down and met
the other two, veering them off on an angle to the right. Meanwhile the
superintendent raved, pleaded, and threatened without avail, but finally
yielded and refused the receipt and dispossession of his cattle. This was
just what the quarantine captain wanted, and the dove of peace began to
shake its plumage. Within an hour all three of the herds were moving out
for the head of Wolf Creek, accompanied only by the quarantine guards, the
remainder of the posse returning to their homes or their work. Having
ample time on our hands, Sponsilier and I expected to remain at Station
No. 1 until after the 10th of September, and accordingly made ourselves at
home at that camp. To say that we were elated over the situation puts it
mildly, and that night the two of us lost nearly a hundred dollars playing
poker with the quarantine guards. A strict vigilance was maintained over
the herds in question, but all reports were unanimous that they were
contentedly occupying their allotted range.</p>
<p>But at noon on the third day of the enforced isolation, a messenger from
Powderville arrived at the first station. A troop of cavalry from Fort
Keogh, accompanied by a pack-train, had crossed the Powder River below the
hamlet, their avowed mission being to afford an escort for certain
government beef, then under detention by the local authorities. The report
fell among us like a flash of lightning. Ample time had elapsed for a
messenger to ride to the Yellowstone, and, returning with troops, pilot
them to the camps of Field, Radcliff & Co. A consultation was
immediately held, but no definite line of action had been arrived at when
a horseman from one of the lower camps dashed up and informed us that the
three herds were already trailing out for the dead-line, under an escort
of cavalry. Saddling up, we rallied what few men were available,
determined to make a protest, at least, in the interest of humanity to
dumb brutes. We dispatched couriers to the nearest camps and the outer
quarantine station; but before a posse of twenty men arrived, the lead
herd was within a mile of the dead-line, and we rode out and met them.
Fully eighty troopers, half of which rode in column formation in front,
halted us as we approached. Terse and to the point were the questions and
answers exchanged between the military arm of the government and the
quarantine authorities of Montana. When the question arose of indemnity to
citizens, in case of death to native cattle, a humane chord was touched in
the young lieutenant in command, resulting in his asking several
questions, to which the "major-domo" protested. Once satisfied of the
justice of quarantine, the officer, in defense of his action, said:</p>
<p>"Gentlemen, I am under instructions to give these herds, intended for use
at Fort Buford, a three days' escort beyond this quarantine line. I am
very much obliged to you all for making so clear the necessity of
isolating herds of Texas cattle, and that little or no hardship may attend
my orders, you may have until noon to-morrow to drift all native stock
west of the Powder River. When these herds encamp for the night, they will
receive instructions not to move forward before twelve to-morrow. I find
the situation quite different from reports; nevertheless orders are
orders."</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2HCH0020" id="link2HCH0020"></SPAN></p>
<br/>
<h2> CHAPTER XX. ON THE JUST AND THE UNJUST </h2>
<p>The quarantine guards returned to their camp. Our plans were suddenly and
completely upset, and not knowing which way to turn, Sponsilier and I,
slightly crestfallen, accompanied the guards. It was already late in the
evening, but Captain Ullmer took advantage of the brief respite granted
him to clear the east half of the valley of native cattle. Couriers were
dispatched to sound the warning among the ranches down the river, while a
regular round-up outfit was mustered among the camps to begin the drifting
of range stock that evening. A few men were left at the two camps, as
quarantine was not to be abandoned, and securing our borrowed horses, my
partner and I bade our friends farewell and set out on our return for the
Yellowstone. Merely touching at Powderville for a hasty supper, we held a
northwest, cross-country course, far into the night, when we unsaddled to
rest our horses and catch a few hours' sleep. But sunrise found us again
in our saddles, and by the middle of the forenoon we were breakfasting
with our friends in Miles City.</p>
<p>Fort Keogh was but a short distance up the river. That military
interference had been secured through fraud and deception, there was not
the shadow of a doubt. During the few hours which we spent in Miles, the
cattle interests were duly aroused, and a committee of cowmen were
appointed to call on the post commander at Keogh with a formidable
protest, which would no doubt be supplemented later, on the return of the
young lieutenant and his troopers. During our ride the night before,
Sponsilier and I had discussed the possibility of arousing the authorities
at Glendive. Since it was in the neighborhood of one hundred miles from
Powderville to the former point on the railroad, the herds would consume
nearly a week in reaching there. A freight train was caught that
afternoon, and within twenty-four hours after leaving the quarantine camp
on the Powder River, we had opened headquarters at the Stock Exchange
Saloon in Glendive. On arriving, I deposited one hundred dollars with the
proprietor of that bar-room, with the understanding that it was to be used
in getting an expression from the public in regard to the question of
Texas fever. Before noon the next day, Dave Sponsilier and Tom Quirk were
not only the two most popular men in Glendive, but quarantine had been
decided on with ringing resolutions.</p>
<p>Our standing was soon of the best. Horses were tendered us, and saddling
one I crossed the Yellowstone and started down the river to arouse
outlying ranches, while Sponsilier and a number of local cowmen rode south
to locate a camp and a deadline. I was absent two days, having gone north
as far as Wolf Island, where I recrossed the river, returning on the
eastern side of the valley. At no ranch which was visited did my mission
fail of meeting hearty approval, especially on the western side of the
river, where severe losses from fever had been sustained the fall before.
One ranch on Thirteen Mile offered, if necessary, to send every man in its
employ, with their own wagon and outfit of horses, free of all charge,
until quarantine was lifted. But I suggested, instead, that they send
three or four men with their horses and blankets, leaving the remainder to
be provided for by the local committee. In my two days' ride, over fifty
volunteers were tendered, but I refused all except twenty, who were to
report at Glendive not later than the morning of the 6th. On my return to
the railroad, all arrangements were completed and the outlook was
promising. Couriers had arrived from the south during my absence, bringing
the news of the coming of the through Texas cattle, and warning the local
ranches to clear the way or take the consequences. All native stock had
been pushed west of the Powder and Yellowstone, as far north as Cabin
Creek, which had been decided on as the second quarantine-line. Daily
reports were being received of the whereabouts of the moving herds, and at
the rate they were traveling, they would reach Cabin Creek about the 7th.
Two wagons had been outfitted, cooks employed, and couriers dispatched to
watch the daily progress of the cattle, which, if following the usual
route, would strike the deadline some distance south of Glendive.</p>
<p>During the next few days, Sponsilier and I were social lions in that town,
and so great was our popularity we could have either married or been
elected to office. We limited our losses at poker to so much an evening,
and what we won from the merchant class we invariably lost among the
volunteer guards and cowmen, taking our luck with a sangfroid which proved
us dead-game sports, and made us hosts of friends. We had contributed one
hundred dollars to the general quarantine fund, and had otherwise made
ourselves popular with all classes in the brief time at our command. Under
the pretense that we might receive orders at any time to overtake our
herds, we declined all leadership in the second campaign about to be
inaugurated against Texas fever. Dave and I were both feeling rather
chesty over the masterful manner in which we had aroused the popular
feeling in favor of quarantine in our own interest, at the same time
making it purely a local movement. We were swaggering about like
ward-heelers, when on the afternoon of the 5th the unexpected again
happened. The business interests of the village usually turned out to meet
the daily passenger trains, even the poker-games taking a recess until the
cars went past. The arrival and departure of citizens of the place were
noted by every one, and strangers were looked upon with timidity, very
much as in all simple communities. Not taking any interest in the passing
trains, Sponsilier was writing a letter to his girl in Texas, while I was
shaking dice for the cigars with the bartender of the Stock Exchange, when
the Eastbound arrived. After the departure of the train, I did not take
any notice of the return of the boys to the abandoned games, or the influx
of patrons to the house, until some one laid a hand on my shoulder and
quietly said, "Isn't your name Quirk?"</p>
<p>Turning to the speaker, I was confronted by Mr. Field and Mr. Radcliff,
who had just arrived by train from the west. Admitting my identity, I
invited them to have a cigar or liquid refreshment, inquiring whence they
had come and where their cattle were. To my surprise, Fort Keogh was named
as their last refuge, and the herds were reported to cross the railroad
within the next few days. Similar questions were asked me, but before
replying, I caught Sponsilier's eye and summoned him with a wink. On
Dave's presenting himself, I innocently asked the pair if they did not
remember my friend as one of the men whom they had under arrest at Dodge.
They grunted an embarrassed acknowledgment, which was returned in the same
coin, when I proceeded to inform them that our cattle crossed the railroad
at Little Missouri ten days before, and that we were only waiting the
return of Mr. Lovell from the Crow Agency before proceeding to our
destination. With true Yankee inquisitiveness, other questions followed,
the trend of which was to get us to admit that we had something to do with
the present activities in quarantining Texas cattle. But I avoided their
leading queries, and looked appealingly at Sponsilier, who came to my
rescue with an answer born of the moment.</p>
<p>"Well, gentlemen," said Dave, seating himself on the bar and leisurely
rolling a cigarette, "that town of Little Missouri is about the dullest
hole that I was ever water-bound in. Honestly, I'd rather be with the
cattle than loafing in it with money in my pocket. Now this town has got
some get-up about it; I'll kiss a man's foot if he complains that this
burg isn't sporty enough for his blood. They've given me a run here for my
white alley, and I still think I know something about that game called
draw-poker. But you were speaking about quarantine. Yes; there seems to
have been a good many cattle lost through these parts last fall. You ought
to have sent your herds up through Dakota, where there is no native stock
to interfere. I'd hate to have cattle coming down the Powder River. A
friend of mine passed through here yesterday; his herd was sold for
delivery on the Elkhorn, north of here, and he tells me he may not be able
to reach there before October. He saw your herds and tells me you are
driving the guts out of them. So if there's anything in that old
'ship-fever theory,' you ought to be quarantined until it snows. There's a
right smart talk around here of fixing a dead-line below somewhere, and if
you get tied up before reaching the railroad, it won't surprise me a
little bit. When it comes to handling the cattle, old man Don has the good
hard cow-sense every time, but you shorthorns give me a pain."</p>
<p>"What did I tell you?" said Radcliff, the elder one, to his partner, as
they turned to leave.</p>
<p>On nearing the door, Mr. Field halted and begrudgingly said, "See you
later, Quirk."</p>
<p>"Not if I see you first," I replied; "you ain't my kind of cowmen."</p>
<p>Not even waiting for them to pass outside, Sponsilier, from his elevated
position, called every one to the bar to irrigate. The boys quit their
games, and as they lined up in a double row, Dave begged the bartenders to
bestir themselves, and said to his guests: "Those are the kid-gloved
cowmen that I've been telling you about—the owners of the Texas
cattle that are coming through here. Did I hang it on them artistically,
or shall I call them back and smear it on a shade deeper? They smelt a
mouse all right, and when their cattle reach Cabin Creek, they'll smell
the rat in earnest. Now, set out the little and big bottle and everybody
have a cigar on the side. And drink hearty, lads, for to-morrow we may be
drinking branch water in a quarantine camp."</p>
<p>The arrival of Field and Radcliff was accepted as a defiance to the local
cattle interests. Popular feeling was intensified when it was learned that
they were determined not to recognize any local quarantine, and were
secretly inquiring for extra men to guard their herds in passing Glendive.
There was always a rabble element in every frontier town, and no doubt, as
strangers, they could secure assistance in quarters that the local cowmen
would spurn. Matters were approaching a white heat, when late that night
an expected courier arrived, and reported the cattle coming through at the
rate of twenty miles a day. They were not following any particular trail,
traveling almost due north, and if the present rate of travel was
maintained, Cabin Creek would be reached during the forenoon of the 7th.
This meant business, and the word was quietly passed around that all
volunteers were to be ready to move in the morning. A cowman named
Retallac, owner of a range on the Yellowstone, had previously been decided
on as captain, and would have under him not less than seventy-five chosen
men, which number, if necessary, could easily be increased to one hundred.</p>
<p>Morning dawned on a scene of active operations. The two wagons were
started fully an hour in advance of the cavalcade, which was to follow,
driving a remuda of over two hundred saddle horses. Sponsilier and I
expected to accompany the outfit, but at the last moment our plans were
changed by an incident and we remained behind, promising to overtake them
later. There were a number of old buffalo hunters in town, living a
precarious life, and one of their number had quietly informed Sheriff
Wherry that they had been approached with an offer of five dollars a day
to act as an escort to the herds while passing through. The quarantine
captain looked upon that element as a valuable ally, suggesting that if it
was a question of money, our side ought to be in the market for their
services. Heartily agreeing with him, the company of guards started,
leaving their captain behind with Sponsilier and myself. Glendive was a
county seat, and with the assistance of the sheriff, we soon had every
buffalo hunter in the town corralled. They were a fine lot of rough men,
inclined to be convivial, and with the assistance of Sheriff Wherry,
coupled with the high standing of the quarantine captain, on a soldier's
introduction Dave and I made a good impression among them. Sponsilier did
the treating and talking, his offer being ten dollars a day for a man and
horse, which was promptly accepted, when the question naturally arose who
would stand sponsor for the wages. Dave backed off some distance, and
standing on his left foot, pulled off his right boot, shaking out a roll
of money on the floor.</p>
<p>"There's the long green, boys," said he, "and you fellows can name your
own banker. I'll make it up a thousand, and whoever you say goes with me.
Shall it be the sheriff, or Mr. Retallac, or the proprietor of the Stock
Exchange?"</p>
<p>Sheriff Wherry interfered, relieving the embarrassment in appointing a
receiver, and vouched that these two Texans were good for any reasonable
sum. The buffalo hunters approved, apologizing to Sponsilier, as he pulled
on his boot, for questioning his financial standing, and swearing
allegiance in every breath. An hour's time was granted in which to saddle
and make ready, during which we had a long chat with Sheriff Wherry and
found him a valuable ally. He had cattle interests in the country, and
when the hunters appeared, fifteen strong, he mounted his horse and
accompanied us several miles on the way. "Now, boys," said he, at parting,
"I'll keep an eye over things around town, and if anything important
happens, I'll send a courier with the news. If those shorthorns attempt to
offer any opposition, I'll run a blazer on them, and if necessary I'll jug
the pair. You fellows just buffalo the herds, and the sheriff's office
will keep cases on any happenings around Glendive. It's understood that
night or day your camp can be found on Cabin Creek, opposite the old eagle
tree. Better send me word as soon as the herds arrive. Good luck to you,
lads."</p>
<p>Neither wagons nor guards were even sighted during our three hours' ride
to the appointed campground. On our arrival tents were being pitched and
men were dragging up wood, while the cooks were busily preparing a late
dinner, the station being fully fifteen miles south of the railroad.
Scouts were thrown out during the afternoon, corrals built, and evening
found the quarantine camp well established for the comfort of its
ninety-odd men. The buffalo hunters were given special attention and
christened the "Sponsilier Guards;" they took again to outdoor life as in
the old days. The report of the scouts was satisfactory; all three of the
herds had been seen and would arrive on schedule time. A hush of
expectancy greeted this news, but Sponsilier and I ridiculed the idea that
there would be any opposition, except a big talk and plenty of bluffing.</p>
<p>"Well, if that's what they rely on," said Captain Retallac, "then they're
as good as in quarantine this minute. If you feel certain they can't get
help from Fort Keogh a second time, those herds will be our guests until
further orders. What we want to do now is to spike every possible chance
for their getting any help, and the matter will pass over like a summer
picnic. If you boys think there's any danger of an appeal to Fort Buford,
the military authorities want to be notified that the Yellowstone Valley
has quarantined against Texas fever and asks their cooperation in
enforcing the same."</p>
<p>"I can fix that," replied Sponsilier. "We have lawyers at Buford right
now, and I can wire them the situation fully in the morning. If they rely
on the military, they will naturally appeal to the nearest post, and if
Keogh and Buford turn them down, the next ones are on the Missouri River,
and at that distance cavalry couldn't reach here within ten days. Oh, I
think we've got a grapevine twist on them this time."</p>
<p>Sponsilier sat up half the night wording a message to our attorneys at
Fort Buford. The next morning found me bright and early on the road to
Glendive with the dispatch, the sending of which would deplete my cash on
hand by several dollars, but what did we care for expense when we had the
money and orders to spend it? I regretted my absence from the quarantine
camp, as I was anxious to be present on the arrival of the herds, and
again watch the "major-domo" run on the rope and fume and charge in vain.
But the importance of blocking assistance was so urgent that I would
gladly have ridden to Buford if necessary. In that bracing atmosphere it
was a fine morning for the ride, and I was rapidly crossing the country,
when a vehicle, in the dip of the plain, was sighted several miles ahead.
I was following no road, but when the driver of the conveyance saw me he
turned across my front and signaled. On meeting the rig, I could hardly
control myself from laughing outright, for there on the rear seat sat
Field and Radcliff, extremely gruff and uncongenial. Common courtesies
were exchanged between the driver and myself, and I was able to answer
clearly his leading questions: Yes; the herds would reach Cabin Creek
before noon; the old eagle tree, which could be seen from the first swell
of the plain beyond, marked the quarantine camp, and it was the intention
to isolate the herds on the South Fork of Cabin. "Drive on," said a voice,
and, in the absence of any gratitude expressed, I inwardly smiled in
reward.</p>
<p>I was detained in Glendive until late in the day, waiting for an
acknowledgment of the message. Sheriff Wherry informed me that the only
move attempted on the part of the shorthorn drovers was the arrest of
Sponsilier and myself, on the charge of being accomplices in the shooting
of one of their men on the North Platte. But the sheriff had assured the
gentlemen that our detention would have no effect on quarantining their
cattle, and the matter was taken under advisement and dropped. It was late
when I started for camp that evening. The drovers had returned,
accompanied by their superintendent, and were occupying the depot, burning
the wires in every direction. I was risking no chances, and cultivated the
company of Sheriff Wherry until the acknowledgment arrived, when he urged
me to ride one of his horses in returning to camp, and insisted on my
taking a carbine. Possibly this was fortunate, for before I had ridden one
third the distance to the quarantine camp, I met a cavalcade of nearly a
dozen men from the isolated herds. When they halted and inquired the
distance to Glendive, one of their number recognized me as having been
among the quarantine guards at Powderville. I admitted that I was there,
turning my horse so that the carbine fell to my hand, and politely asked
if any one had any objections. It seems that no one had, and after a few
commonplace inquiries were exchanged, we passed on our way.</p>
<p>There was great rejoicing on Cabin Creek that night. Songs were sung, and
white navy beans passed current in numerous poker-games until the small
hours of morning. There had been nothing dramatic in the meeting between
the herds and the quarantine guards, the latter force having been
augmented by visiting ranchmen and their help, until protest would have
been useless. A routine of work had been outlined, much stricter than at
Powderville, and a surveillance of the camps was constantly maintained.
Not that there was any danger of escape, but to see that the herds
occupied the country allotted to them, and did not pollute any more
territory than was necessary. The Sponsilier Guards were given an easy day
shift, and held a circle of admirers at night, recounting and living over
again "the good old days." Visitors from either side of the Yellowstone
were early callers, and during the afternoon the sheriff from Glendive
arrived. I did not know until then that Mr. Wherry was a candidate for
reelection that fall, but the manner in which he mixed with the boys was
enough to warrant his election for life. What endeared him to Sponsilier
and myself was the fund of information he had collected, and the close tab
he had kept on every movement of the opposition drovers. He told us that
their appeal to Fort Keogh for assistance had been refused with a stinging
rebuke; that a courier had started the evening before down the river for
Fort Buford, and that Mr. Radcliff had personally gone to Fort Abraham
Lincoln to solicit help. The latter post was fully one hundred and fifty
miles away, but that distance could be easily covered by a special train
in case of government interference.</p>
<p>It rained on the afternoon of the 9th. The courier had returned from Fort
Buford on the north, unsuccessful, as had also Mr. Radcliff from Fort
Lincoln on the Missouri River to the eastward. The latter post had
referred the request to Keogh, and washed its hands of intermeddling in a
country not tributary to its territory. The last hope of interference was
gone, and the rigors of quarantine closed in like a siege with every gun
of the enemy spiked. Let it be a week or a month before the quarantine was
lifted, the citizens of Montana had so willed it, and their wish was law.
Evening fell, and the men drew round the fires. The guards buttoned their
coats as they rode away, and the tired ones drew their blankets around
them as they lay down to sleep. Scarcely a star could be seen in the sky
overhead, but before my partner or myself sought our bed, a great calm had
fallen, the stars were shining, and the night had grown chilly.</p>
<p>The old buffalo hunters predicted a change in the weather, but beyond that
they were reticent. As Sponsilier and I lay down to sleep, we agreed that
if three days, even two days, were spared us, those cattle in quarantine
could never be tendered at Fort Buford on the appointed day of delivery.
But during the early hours of morning we were aroused by the returning
guards, one of whom halted his horse near our blankets and shouted, "Hey,
there, you Texans; get up—a frost has fallen!"</p>
<p>Sure enough, it had frosted during the night, and the quarantine was
lifted. When day broke, every twig and blade of grass glistened in silver
sheen, and the horses on picket stood humped and shivering. The sun arose
upon the herds moving, with no excuse to say them nay, and orders were
issued to the guards to break camp and disperse to their homes. As we rode
into Glendive that morning, sullen and defeated by a power beyond our
control, in speaking of the peculiarity of the intervention, Sponsilier
said: "Well, if it rains on the just and the unjust alike, why shouldn't
it frost the same."</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2HCH0021" id="link2HCH0021"></SPAN></p>
<br/>
<h2> CHAPTER XXI. FORT BUFORD </h2>
<p>We were at our rope's end. There were a few accounts to settle in
Glendive, after which we would shake its dust from our feet. Very few of
the quarantine guards returned to town, and with the exception of Sheriff
Wherry, none of the leading cowmen, all having ridden direct for their
ranches. Long before the train arrived which would carry us to Little
Missouri, the opposition herds appeared and crossed the railroad west of
town. Their commissaries entered the village for supplies, while the
"major-domo," surrounded by a body-guard of men, rode about on his
miserable palfrey. The sheriff, fearing a clash between the victorious and
the vanquished, kept an eye on Sponsilier and me as we walked the streets,
freely expressing our contempt of Field, Radcliff & Co., their
henchmen and their methods. Dave and I were both nerved to desperation;
Sheriff Wherry, anxious to prevent a conflict, counciled with the
opposition drovers, resulting in their outfits leaving town, while the
principals took stage across to Buford.</p>
<p>Meanwhile Sponsilier had wired full particulars to our employer at Big
Horn. It was hardly necessary, as the frost no doubt was general all over
Montana, but we were anxious to get into communication with Lovell
immediately on his return to the railroad. We had written him from Miles
of our failure at Powderville, and the expected second stand at Glendive,
and now the elements had notified him that the opposition herds were
within striking distance, and would no doubt appear at Buford on or before
the day of delivery. An irritable man like our employer would neither eat
nor sleep, once the delivery at the Crow Agency was over, until reaching
the railroad, and our message would be awaiting him on his return to Big
Horn. Our train reached Little Missouri early in the evening, and leaving
word with the agent that we were expecting important messages from the
west, we visited the liveryman and inquired about the welfare of our
horses. The proprietor of the stable informed us that they had fared well,
and that he would have them ready for us on an hour's notice. It was after
dark and we were at supper when the first message came. An immediate
answer was required, and arising from the table, we left our meal
unfinished and hastened to the depot. From then until midnight, messages
flashed back and forth, Sponsilier dictating while I wrote. As there was
no train before the regular passenger the next day, the last wire
requested us to have the horses ready to meet the Eastbound, saying that
Bob Quirk would accompany Lovell.</p>
<p>That night it frosted again. Sponsilier and I slept until noon the next
day without awakening. Then the horses were brought in from pasture, and
preparation was made to leave that evening. It was in the neighborhood of
ninety miles across to the mouth of the Yellowstone, and the chances were
that we would ride it without unsaddling. The horses had had a two weeks'
rest, and if our employer insisted on it, we would breakfast with the
herds the next morning. I was anxious to see the cattle again and rejoin
my outfit, but like a watched pot, the train was an hour late. Sponsilier
and I took advantage of the delay and fortified the inner man against the
night and the ride before us. This proved fortunate, as Lovell and my
brother had supper en route in the dining-car. A running series of
questions were asked and answered; saddles were shaken out of gunny-sacks
and cinched on waiting horses as though we were starting to a prairie
fire. Bob Quirk's cattle had reached the Crow Agency in splendid
condition, the delivery was effected without a word, and old man Don was
in possession of a letter from Flood, saying everything had passed
smoothly at the Rosebud Agency.</p>
<p>Contrary to the expectation of Sponsilier and myself, our employer was in
a good humor, fairly walking on the clouds over the success of his two
first deliveries of the year. But amid the bustle and rush, in view of
another frosty night, Sponsilier inquired if it would not be a good idea
to fortify against the chill, by taking along a bottle of brandy. "Yes,
two of them if you want to," said old man Don, in good-humored approval.
"Here, Tom, fork this horse and take the pitch out of him," he continued;
"I don't like the look of his eye." But before I could reach the horse,
one of my own string, Bob Quirk had mounted him, when in testimony of the
nutritive qualities of Dakota's grasses, he arched his spine like a true
Texan and outlined a worm-fence in bucking a circle.</p>
<p>The start was made during the gathering dusk. Sponsilier further lifted
the spirits of our employer, as we rode along, by a clear-cut description
of the opposition cattle, declaring that had they ever equaled ours, the
handling they had received since leaving Ogalalla, compared to his, would
class them with short twos in the spring against long threes in the fall.
Within an hour the stars shone out, and after following the river some ten
miles, we bore directly north until Beaver Creek was reached near
midnight. The pace was set at about an eight-mile, steady clip, with an
occasional halt to tighten cinches or shift saddles. The horses were
capable of a faster gait without tiring, but we were not sure of the route
and were saving them for the finish after daybreak. Early in the night we
were conscious that a frost was falling, and several times Sponsilier
inquired if no one cared for a nip from his bottle. Bob Quirk started the
joke on Dave by declining; old man Don uncorked the flask, and, after
smelling of the contents, handed it back with his thanks. I caught onto
their banter, and not wishing to spoil a good jest, also declined, leaving
Sponsilier to drink alone. During the night, whenever conversation lagged,
some one was certain to make reference to the remarks which are said to
have passed between the governors of the Carolinas, or if that failed to
provoke a rise, ask direct if no one had something to ward off the chilly
air. After being refused several times, Dave had thrown the bottle away,
meeting these jests with the reply that he had a private flask, but its
quality was such that he was afraid of offending our cultivated tastes by
asking us to join him.</p>
<p>Day broke about five in the morning. We had been in the saddle nearly ten
hours, and were confident that sunrise would reveal some landmark to
identify our location. The atmosphere was frosty and clear, and once the
gray of dawn yielded to the rising sun, the outline of the Yellowstone was
easily traced on our left, while the bluffs in our front shielded a view
of the mother Missouri. In attempting to approach the latter we
encountered some rough country and were compelled to turn towards the
former, crossing it, at O'Brien's roadhouse, some seven miles above the
mouth. The husbanded reserves of our horses were shaken out, and shortly
afterward smoke-clouds from camp-fires, hanging low, attracted our
attention. The herds were soon located as they arose and grazed away from
their bed-grounds. The outfits were encamped on the eastern side of the
Yellowstone; and before leaving the government road, we sighted in our
front a flag ascending to greet the morning, and the location of Fort
Buford was established. Turning towards the cattle, we rode for the lower
wagon and were soon unsaddling at Forrest's camp. The latter had arrived
two days before and visited the post; he told us that the opposition were
there in force, as well as our own attorneys. The arrival of the cattle
under contract for that military division was the main topic of
discussion, and Forrest had even met a number of civilian employees of
Fort Buford whose duties were to look after the government beeves. The
foreman of these unenlisted attaches, a Texan named Sanders, had casually
ridden past his camp the day before, looking over the cattle, and had
pronounced them the finest lot of beeves tendered the government since his
connection with that post.</p>
<p>"That's good news," said Lovell, as he threw his saddle astride the front
wheel of the wagon; "that's the way I like to hear my cattle spoken about.
Now, you boys want to make friends with all those civilians, and my
attorneys and Bob and I will hobnob around with the officers, and try and
win the good will of the entire post. You want to change your camp every
few days and give your cattle good grazing and let them speak for
themselves. Better kill a beef among the outfits, and insist on all
callers staying for meals. We're strangers here, and we want to make a
good impression, and show the public that we were born white, even if we
do handle cattle for a living. Quince, tie up the horses for us, and after
breakfast Bob and I will look over the herds and then ride into Fort
Buford.—Trout for breakfast? You don't mean it!"</p>
<p>It was true, however, and our appetites did them justice. Forrest reported
Splann as having arrived a day late, and now encamped the last herd up the
valley. Taking our horses with us, Dave and I set out to look up our herds
and resume our former positions. I rode through Sponsilier's cattle while
en route to my own, and remembered the first impression they had made on
my mind,—their uniformity in size and smoothness of build,—and
now found them fatted into finished form, the herd being a credit to any
drover. Continuing on my way, I intercepted my own cattle, lying down over
hundreds of acres, and so contented that I refused to disturb them. Splann
reported not over half a dozen sore-footed ones among them, having grazed
the entire distance from Little Missouri, giving the tender cattle a good
chance to recover. I held a circle of listeners for several hours, in
recounting Sponsilier's and my own experiences in the quarantine camps,
and our utter final failure, except that the opposition herds had been
detained, which would force them to drive over twenty miles a day in order
to reach Buford on time. On the other hand, an incident of more than
ordinary moment had occurred with the cattle some ten days previous. The
slow movement of the grazing herds allowed a great amount of freedom to
the boys and was taken advantage of at every opportunity. It seems that on
approaching Beaver Creek, Owen Ubery and Runt Pickett had ridden across to
it for the purpose of trout-fishing. They were gone all day, having struck
the creek some ten or twelve miles west of the cattle, expecting to fish
down it and overtake the herds during the evening. But about noon they
discovered where a wagon had been burned, years before, and near by were
five human skeletons, evidently a family. It was possibly the work of
Indians, or a blizzard, and to prove the discovery, Pickett had brought in
one of the skulls and proposed taking it home with him as a memento of the
drive. Parent objected to having the reminder in the wagon, and a row
resulted between them, till Splann interfered and threw the gruesome relic
away.</p>
<p>The next morning a dozen of us from the three herds rode into the post.
Fort Buford was not only a military headquarters, but a supply depot for
other posts farther west on the Missouri and Yellowstone rivers. The
nearest railroad connection was Glendive, seventy-six miles up the latter
stream, though steamboats took advantage of freshets in the river to
transport immense supplies from lower points on the Missouri where there
were rail connections. From Buford westward, transportation was effected
by boats of lighter draft and the regulation wagon train. It was
recognized as one of the most important supply posts in the West; as early
as five years previous to this date, it had received in a single summer as
many as ten thousand beeves. Its provision for cavalry was one of its
boasted features, immense stacks of forage flanking those quarters, while
the infantry barracks and officers' quarters were large and comfortable. A
stirring little town had sprung up on the outside, affording the citizens
employment in wood and hay contracts, and becoming the home of a large
number of civilian employees, the post being the mainstay of the village.</p>
<p>After settling our quarantine bills, Sponsilier and I each had money left.
Our employer refused even to look at our expense bills until after the
delivery, but urged us to use freely any remaining funds in cultivating
the good will of the citizens and soldiery alike. Forrest was accordingly
supplied with funds, with the understanding that he was to hunt up Sanders
and his outfit and show them a good time. The beef foreman was soon
located in the quartermaster's office, and, having been connected with the
post for several years, knew the ropes. He had come to Buford with Texas
cattle, and after their delivery had accepted a situation under the acting
quartermaster, easily rising to the foremanship through his superior
abilities as a cowman. It was like a meeting of long-lost brothers to
mingle again with a cow outfit, and the sutler's bar did a flourishing
business during our stay in the post. There were ten men in Sanders's
outfit, several of whom besides himself were Texans, and before we parted,
every rascal had promised to visit us the next day and look over all the
cattle.</p>
<p>The next morning Bob Quirk put in an early appearance at my wagon. He had
passed the other outfits, and notified us all to have the cattle under
convenient herd, properly watered in advance, as the post commandant,
quartermaster, and a party of minor officers were going to ride out that
afternoon and inspect our beeves. Lovell, of course, would accompany them,
and Bob reported him as having made a ten-strike with the officers' mess,
not being afraid to spend his money. Fortunately the present quartermaster
at Buford was a former acquaintance of Lovell, the two having had business
transactions. The quartermaster had been connected with frontier posts
from Fort Clark, Texas, to his present position. According to report, the
opposition were active and waging an aggressive campaign, but not being
Western men, were at a disadvantage. Champagne had flowed freely at a
dinner given the night before by our employer, during which Senator
Aspgrain, in responding to a toast, had paid the army a high tribute for
the part it had played in reclaiming the last of our western frontier. The
quartermaster, in replying, had felicitously remarked, as a matter of his
own observation, that the Californian's love for a horse was only excelled
by the Texan's love for a cow, to which, amid uproarious laughter, old man
Don arose and bowed his acknowledgment.</p>
<p>My brother changed horses and returned to Sponsilier's wagon. Dave had
planned to entertain the post beef outfit for dinner, and had insisted on
Bob's presence. They arrived at my herd near the middle of the forenoon,
and after showing the cattle and remuda, we all returned to Sponsilier's
camp. These civilian employees furnished their own mounts, and were
anxious to buy a number of our best horses after the delivery was over.
Not even a whisper was breathed about any uncertainty of our filling the
outstanding contract, yet Sanders was given to understand that Don Lovell
would rather, if he took a fancy to him, give a man a horse than sell him
one. Not a word was said about any opposition to our herds; that would
come later, and Sanders and his outfit were too good judges of Texas
cattle to be misled by any bluster or boastful talk. Sponsilier acted the
host, and after dinner unearthed a box of cigars, and we told stories and
talked of our homes in the sunny South until the arrival of the military
party. The herds had been well watered about noon and drifted out on the
first uplands, and we intercepted the cavalcade before it reached
Sponsilier's herd. They were mounted on fine cavalry horses, and the only
greeting which passed, aside from a military salute, was when Lovell said:
"Dave, show these officers your beeves. Answer any question they may ask
to the best of your ability. Gentlemen, excuse me while you look over the
cattle."</p>
<p>There were about a dozen military men in the party, some of them veterans
of the civil war, others having spent their lifetime on our western
frontier, while a few were seeing their first year's service after leaving
West Point. In looking over the cattle, the post commander and
quartermaster were taken under the wing of Sanders, who, as only a man
could who was born to the occupation, called their attention to every fine
point about the beeves. After spending fully an hour with Sponsilier's
herd, the cavalcade proceeded on to mine, Lovell rejoining the party, but
never once attempting to draw out an opinion, and again excusing himself
on reaching my cattle. I continued with the military, answering every
one's questions, from the young lieutenant's to the veteran commandant's,
in which I was ably seconded by the quartermaster's foreman. My cattle had
a splendid fill on them and eloquently spoke their own praises, yet
Sanders lost no opportunity to enter a clincher in their favor. He pointed
out beef after beef, and vouched for the pounds net they would dress,
called attention to their sameness in build, ages, and general thrift,
until one would have supposed that he was a salesman instead of a civilian
employee.</p>
<p>My herd was fully ten miles from the post, and it was necessary for the
military to return that evening. Don Lovell and a number of the boys had
halted at a distance, and once the inspection was over, we turned and rode
back to the waiting group of horsemen. On coming up, a number of the
officers dismounted to shift saddles, preparatory to starting on their
return, when the quartermaster halted near our employer and said:</p>
<p>"Colonel Lovell, let me say to you, in all sincerity, that in my
twenty-five years' experience on this frontier, I never saw a finer lot of
beeves tendered the government than these of yours. My position requires
that I should have a fair knowledge of beef cattle, and the perquisites of
my office in a post of Buford's class enable me to employ the best
practical men available to perfect the service. I remember the quality of
cattle which you delivered four years ago to me at Fort Randall, when it
was a six-company post, yet they were not as fine a lot of beeves as these
are. I have always contended that there was nothing too good in my
department for the men who uphold the colors of our country, especially on
the front line. You have been a soldier yourself and know that I am
talking good horsesense, and I want to say to you that whatever the
outcome of this dispute may be, if yours are the best cattle, you may
count on my support until the drums beat tattoo. The government is liberal
and insists on the best; the rank and file are worthy, and yet we don't
always get what is ordered and well paid for. Now, remember, comrade, if
this difference comes to an issue, I'm right behind you, and we'll stand
or be turned down together."</p>
<p>"Thank you, Colonel," replied Mr. Lovell. "It does seem rather fortunate,
my meeting up with a former business acquaintance, and at a time when I
need him bad. If I am successful in delivering on this Buford award, it
will round out, during my fifteen years as a drover, over a hundred
thousand cattle that I have sold to the government for its Indian and army
departments. There are no secrets in my business; the reason of my success
is simple—my cattle were always there on the appointed day, humanely
handled, and generally just a shade better than the specifications. My
home country has the cattle for sale; I can tell within two bits a head
what it will cost to lay them down here, and it's music to my ear to hear
you insist on the best. I agree with you that the firing-line is entitled
to special consideration, yet you know that there are ringsters who fatten
at the expense of the rank and file. At present I haven't a word to say,
but at noon to-morrow I shall tender the post commander at Ford Buford,
through his quartermaster, ten thousand beeves, as a sub-contractor on the
original award to The Western Supply Company." The post commander, an
elderly, white-haired officer, rode over and smilingly said: "Now, look
here, my Texas friend, I'm afraid you are borrowing trouble. True enough,
there has been a protest made against our receiving your beeves, and I
don't mince my words in saying that some hard things have been said about
you. But we happen to know something about your reputation and don't give
credit for all that is said. Your beeves are an eloquent argument in your
favor, and if I were you I wouldn't worry. It is always a good idea in
this Western country to make a proviso; and unless the unforeseen happens,
the quartermaster's cattle foreman will count your beeves to-morrow
afternoon; and for the sake of your company, if we keep you a day or two
longer settling up, I don't want to hear you kick. Now, come on and go
back with us to the post, as I promised my wife to bring you over to our
house this evening. She seems to think that a man from Texas with ten
thousand cattle ought to have horns, and I want to show her that she's
mistaken. Come on, now, and not a damned word of protest out of you."</p>
<p>The military party started on their return, accompanied by Lovell. The
civilian attaches followed at a respectful distance, a number of us
joining them as far as Sponsilier's camp. There we halted, when Sanders
insisted on an explanation of the remarks which had passed between our
employer and his. Being once more among his own, he felt no delicacy in
asking for information—which he would never think of doing with his
superiors. My brother gave him a true version of the situation, but it
remained for Dave Sponsilier to add an outline of the opposition herds and
outfits.</p>
<p>"With humane treatment," said Dave, "the cattle would have qualified under
the specifications. They were bought at Ogalalla, and any of the boys here
will tell you that the first one was a good herd. The market was all shot
to pieces, and they picked them up at their own price. But the owners
didn't have cow-sense enough to handle the cattle, and put one of their
own gang over the herds as superintendent. They left Cabin Creek, below
Glendive, on the morning of the 10th, and they'll have to travel nearly
twenty miles a day to reach here by noon to-morrow. Sanders, you know that
gait will soon kill heavy cattle. The outfits were made up of short-card
men and dance-hall ornaments, wild enough to look at, but shy on cattle
sabe. Just so they showed up bad and wore a six-shooter, that was enough
to win a home with Field and Radcliff. If they reach here on time, I'll
gamble there ain't ten horses in the entire outfit that don't carry a
nigger brand. And when it comes to the big conversation—well,
they've simply got the earth faded."</p>
<p>It was nearly sundown when we mounted our horses and separated for the
day. Bob Quirk returned to the post with the civilians, while I hastened
back to my wagon. I had left orders with Splann to water the herd a second
time during the evening and thus insure an easy night in holding the
cattle. On my return, they were just grazing out from the river, their
front a mile wide, making a pretty picture with the Yellowstone in the
background. But as I sat my horse and in retrospect reviewed my connection
with the cattle before me and the prospect of soon severing it, my remuda
came over a near-by hill in a swinging trot for their second drink.
Levering threw them into the river below the herd, and turning, galloped
up to me and breathlessly asked: "Tom, did you see that dust-cloud up the
river? Well, the other cattle are coming. The timber cuts off your view
from here, besides the sun's gone down, but I watched their signal for
half an hour from that second hill yonder. Oh, it's cattle all right; I
know the sign, even if they are ten miles away."</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2HCH0022" id="link2HCH0022"></SPAN></p>
<br/>
<h2> CHAPTER XXII. A SOLDIER'S HONOR </h2>
<p>Delivery day dawned with a heavy fog hanging over the valley of the
Yellowstone. The frosts had ceased, and several showers had fallen during
the night, one of which brought our beeves to their feet, but they gave no
serious trouble and resumed their beds within an hour. There was an autumn
feeling in the atmosphere, and when the sun arose, dispelling the mists, a
glorious September day was ushered in. The foliage of the timber which
skirted either river was coloring from recent frosts, while in numerous
places the fallen leaves of the cottonwood were littering the ground.
Enough rain had fallen to settle the dust, and the signal of the
approaching herds, seen the evening before, was no longer visible.</p>
<p>The delay in their appearance, however, was only temporary. I rode down to
Sponsilier's camp early that morning and reported the observations of my
wrangler at sundown. No one at the lower wagon had noticed the
dust-clouds, and some one suggested that it might be a freight outfit
returning unloaded, when one of the men on herd was seen signaling the
camp's notice. The attention of the day-herders, several miles distant,
was centered on some object up the river; and mounting our horses, we rode
for the nearest elevation, from which two herds were to be seen on the
opposite side, traveling in trail formation. There was no doubting their
identity; and wondering what the day would bring forth, we rode for a
better point of observation, when from behind a timbered bend of the river
the lead of the last herd appeared. At last the Yellowstone Valley held
over twenty thousand beef cattle, in plain sight of each other, both
factions equally determined on making the delivery on an award that
required only half that number. Dismounting, we kept the herds in view for
over an hour, or until the last one had crossed the river above O'Brien's
road-house, the lead one having disappeared out of sight over on the main
Missouri.</p>
<p>This was the situation on the morning of September 15. As we returned to
Sponsilier's wagon, all the idle men about the camp joined our cavalcade,
and we rode down and paid Forrest's outfit a social visit. The latter were
all absent, except the cook, but shortly returned from down the river and
reported the opposition herds to be crossing the Missouri, evidently going
to camp at Alkali Lake.</p>
<p>"Well, I've been present at a good many deliveries," said Quince Forrest,
as he reined in his horse, "but this one is in a class by itself. We
always aimed to get within five or ten miles of a post or agency, but our
friends made a worthy effort to get on the parade-ground. They did the
next best thing and occupied the grazing where the cavalry horses have
been herded all summer. Oh, their cattle will be hog-fat in a few days.
Possibly they expect to show their cattle in town, and not trouble the
quartermaster and comandante to even saddle up—they're the very kind
of people who wouldn't give anybody trouble if they could help it. It
wouldn't make so much difference about those old frontier officers or a
common cowman, but if one of those young lieutenants was to get his feet
wet, the chances are that those Washington City contractors would fret and
worry for weeks. Of course, any little inconvenience that any one incurred
on their account, they'd gladly come all the way back from Europe to make
it right—I don't think."</p>
<p>While we were discussing the situation, Bob Quirk arrived at camp. He
reported that Lovell, relying on the superiority of our beeves, had waived
his right to deliver on the hour of high noon, and an inspection of the
other cattle would be made that evening. The waiver was made at the
request of the leading officers of Fort Buford, all very friendly to the
best interests of the service and consequently ours, and the object was to
silence all subsequent controversy. My brother admitted that some outside
pressure had been brought to bear during the night, very antagonistic to
the post commander, who was now more determined than ever to accept none
but the best for their next year's meat supply. A well-known congressman,
of unsavory reputation as a lobbyist in aiding and securing government
contracts for his friends, was the latest addition to the legal forces of
the opposition. He constantly mentioned his acquaintances in the War
Department and maintained an air of assurance which was very
disconcerting. The younger officers in the post were abashed at the
effrontery of the contractors and their legal representatives, and had
even gone so far as to express doubts as to the stability of their
positions in case the decision favored Lovell's cattle. Opinion was
current that a possible shake-up might occur at Buford after the receipt
of its beef supply, and the more timorous ones were anxious to get into
the right wagon, instead of being relegated to some obscure outpost.</p>
<p>It was now evident that the decisive issue was to occur over the delivery
of the contending herds. Numerous possibilities arose in my imagination,
and the various foremen advanced their views. A general belief that old
man Don would fight to the last was prevalent, and amidst the discussions
pro and con, I remarked that Lovell could take a final refuge behind the
indemnity in hand.</p>
<p>"Indemnity, hell!" said Bob Quirk, giving me a withering look; "what is
sixty-five thousand dollars on ten thousand beeves, within an hour of
delivery and at thirty-seven and a half a head? You all know that the old
man has strained his credit on this summer's drive, and he's got to have
the money when he goes home. A fifteen or twenty per cent. indemnity does
him no good. The Indian herds have paid out well, but if this delivery
falls down, it will leave him holding the sack. On the other hand, if it
goes through, he will be, financially, an independent man for life. And
while he knows the danger of delay, he consented as readily as any of us
would if asked for a cigarette-paper. He may come out all right, but he's
just about white enough to get the worst of it. I've read these
Sunday-school stories, where the good little boy always came out on top,
but in real life, especially in cattle, it's quite different."</p>
<p>My brother's words had a magical effect. Sponsilier asked for suggestions,
when Bob urged that every man available go into the post and accompany the
inspection party that afternoon. Since Forrest and himself were unknown,
they would take about three of the boys with them, cross the Missouri,
ride through and sum up the opposition cattle. Forrest approved of the
idea, and ordered his cook to bestir himself in getting up an early
dinner. Meanwhile a number of my boys had ridden down to Forrest's wagon,
and I immediately dispatched Clay Zilligan back to my cattle to relieve
Vick Wolf and inform the day-herders that we might not return before dark.
Wolf was the coolest man in my employ, had figured in several shooting
scrapes, and as he was a splendid shot, I wanted to send him with Forrest
and my brother. If identified as belonging to Lovell's outfits, there was
a possibility that insult might be offered the boys; and knowing that it
mattered not what the odds were, it would be resented, I thought it
advisable to send a man who had smelt powder at short range. I felt no
special uneasiness about my brother, in fact he was the logical man to go,
but a little precaution would do no harm, and I saw to it that Sponsilier
sent a good representative.</p>
<p>About one o'clock we started, thirty strong. Riding down the Yellowstone,
the three detailed men, Quince Forrest, and my brother soon bore off to
the left and we lost sight of them. Continuing on down the river, we
forded the Missouri at the regular wagon-crossing, and within an hour
after leaving Forrest's camp cantered into Fort Buford. Sanders and his
outfit were waiting in front of the quartermaster's office, the hour for
starting having been changed from two to three, which afforded ample time
to visit the sutler's bar. Our arrival was noticed about the barracks, and
evidently some complaint had been made, as old man Don joined us in time
for the first round, after which he called Dave and me aside. In reply to
his inquiry regarding our presence, Sponsilier informed him that we had
come in to afford him an escort, in case he wished to attend the
inspection of the opposition herds; that if there was any bulldozing going
on he needn't stand behind the door. Dave informed him that Bob and Quince
and three of the other boys would meet us at the cattle, and that he need
feel no hesitancy in going if it was his wish. It was quite evident that
Mr. Lovell was despondent, but he took courage and announced his
willingness to go along.</p>
<p>"It was my intention not to go," said he, "though Mr. Aspgrain and Sutton
both urged that I should. But now since you boys all feel the same way, I
believe I'll go. Heaven and earth are being moved to have the other cattle
accepted, but there are a couple of old war-horses at the head of this
post that will fight them to the last ditch, and then some. I'm satisfied
that my beeves, in any market in the West, are worth ten dollars a head
more than the other ones, yet there is an effort being made to turn us
down. Our claims rest on two points,—superiority of the beef
tendered, and the legal impossibility of a transfer from themselves, a
corporation, to themselves as individuals. If there is no outside
interference, I think we will make the delivery before noon to-morrow.
Now, I'll get horses for both Mr. Sutton and Senator Aspgrain, and you see
that none of the boys drink too much. Sanders and his outfit are all
right, and I want you lads to remind me to remember him before we leave
this post. Now, we'll all go in a little party by ourselves, and I don't
want a word out of a man, unless we are asked for an opinion from the
officers, as our cattle must argue our cause."</p>
<p>A second drink, a cigar all round, and we were ready to start. As we
returned to our mounts, a bustle of activity pervaded the post. Orderlies
were leading forth the best horses, officers were appearing in
riding-boots and gauntlets, while two conveyances from a livery in town
stood waiting to convey the contractors and their legal representatives.
Our employer and his counsel were on hand, awaiting the start, when the
quartermaster and his outfit led off. There was some delay among the
officers over the change of a horse, which had shown lameness, while the
ringsters were all seated and waiting in their vehicles. Since none of us
knew the trail to Alkali Lake, some one suggested that we follow up the
quartermaster and allow the military and conveyances to go by the
wagon-road. But Lovell objected, and ordered me forward to notice the
trail and course, as the latter was a cut-off and much nearer than by
road. I rode leisurely past the two vehicles, carefully scanning every
face, when Mr. Field recognized and attempted to halt me, but I answered
him with a contemptuous look and rode on. Instantly from the rigs came
cries of "Stop that man!" "Halt that cowboy!" etc., when an orderly
stepped in front of my horse and I reined in. But the shouting and my
detention were seen and heard, and the next instant, led by Mike Sutton,
our men dashed up, scaring the teams, overturning both of the conveyances,
and spilling their occupants on the dusty ground. I admit that we were a
hard-looking lot of cow-hands, our employer's grievance was our own, and
just for an instant there was a blue, sulphuric tinge in the atmosphere as
we accented our protest. The congressman scrambled to his feet, sputtering
a complaint to the post commander, and when order was finally restored,
the latter coolly said:</p>
<p>"Well, Mr. Y——-, when did you assume command at Fort Buford?
Any orders that you want given, while on this military reservation, please
submit them to the proper authorities, and if just, they will receive
attention. What right have you or any of your friends to stop a man
without due process? I spent several hours with these men a few days ago
and found them to my liking. I wish we could recruit the last one of them
into our cavalry. But if you are afraid, I'll order out a troop of horse
to protect you. Shall I?"</p>
<p>"I'm not at all afraid," replied Mr. Raddiff, "but feel under obligation
to protect my counsel. If you please, Colonel."</p>
<p>"Captain O'Neill," said the commandant, turning to that officer, "order
out your troop and give these conveyances ample protection from now until
their return from this cattle inspection. Mr. Lovell, if you wish to be
present, please ride on ahead with your men. The rest of us will proceed
at once, and as soon as the escort arrives, these vehicles will bring up
the rear."</p>
<p>As we rode away, the bugles were calling the troopers.</p>
<p>"That's the way to throw the gaff into them," said Sutton, when we had
ridden out of hearing. "Every time they bluff, call their hand, and
they'll soon get tired running blazers. I want to give notice right now
that the first mark of disrespect shown me, by client or attorney, I'll
slap him then and there, I don't care if he is as big as a giant. We are
up against a hard crowd, and we want to meet them a little over halfway,
even on a hint or insinuation. When it comes to buffaloing the opposite
side, that's my long suit. The history of this case shows that the
opposition has no regard for the rights of others, and it is up to us to
try and teach them that a love of justice is universal. Personally, I'm
nothing but a frontier lawyer from Dodge, but I'm the equal of any
lobbyist that ever left Washington City."</p>
<p>Alkali Lake was some little distance from the post. All three of the herds
were holding beyond it, a polite request having reached them to vacate the
grazing-ground of the cavalry horses. Lovell still insisted that we stand
aloof and give the constituted authorities a free, untrammeled hand until
the inspection was over. The quartermaster and his assistants halted on
approaching the first herd, and giving them a wide berth, we rode for the
nearest good point of observation. The officers galloped up shortly
afterward, reining in for a short conversation, but entering the first
herd before the arrival of the conveyances and their escort. When the
latter party arrived, the nearest one of the three herds had been passed
upon, but the contractors stood on the carriage seats and attempted to
look over the cordon of troopers, formed into a hollow square, which
surrounded them. The troop were mounted on chestnut horses, making a
pretty sight, and I think they enjoyed the folly and humor of the
situation fully as much as we did. On nearing the second herd, we were met
by the other boys, who had given the cattle a thorough going-over and
reported finding two "Circle Dot" beeves among the opposition steers. The
chances are that they had walked off a bed-ground some night while holding
at Ogalalla and had been absorbed into another herd before morning. My
brother announced his intention of taking them back with us, when
Sponsilier taunted him with the fact that there might be objections
offered.</p>
<p>"That'll be all right, Davy," replied Bob; "it'll take a bigger and better
outfit than these pimps and tin-horns to keep me from claiming my own. You
just watch and notice if those two steers don't go back with Forrest. Why,
they had the nerve to question our right even to look them over. It must
be a trifle dull with the GIRLS down there in Ogalalla when all these
'babies' have to turn out at work or go hungry."</p>
<p>Little time was lost in inspecting the last herd. The cattle were thrown
entirely too close together to afford much opportunity in looking them
over, and after riding through them a few times, the officers rode away
for a consultation. We had kept at a distance from the convoy, perfectly
contented so long as the opposition were prisoners of their own choosing.
Captain O'Neill evidently understood the wishes of his superior officer,
and never once were his charges allowed within hailing distance of the
party of inspection. As far as exerting any influence was concerned, for
that matter, all of us might have remained back at the post and received
the report on the commander's return. Yet there was a tinge of uncertainty
as to the result, and all concerned wanted to hear it at the earliest
moment. The inspection party did not keep us long in waiting, for after a
brief conference they turned and rode for the contractors under escort. We
rode forward, the troop closed up in close formation about the two
vehicles, and the general tension rose to that of rigidity. We halted
quietly within easy hearing distance, and without noticing us the
commandant addressed himself to the occupants of the conveyances, who were
now standing on the seats.</p>
<p>"Gentlemen," said he, with military austerity, "the quality and condition
of your cattle places them beyond our consideration. Beef intended for
delivery at this post must arrive here with sufficient flesh to withstand
the rigors of our winter. When possible to secure them, we prefer Northern
wintered cattle, but if they are not available, and we are compelled to
receive Southern ones, they must be of the first quality in conformation
and flesh. It now becomes my duty to say to you that your beeves are
rough, have been over-driven, are tender-footed and otherwise abused, and,
having in view the best interests of the service, with the concurrence of
my associates, I decline them."</p>
<p>The decision was rendered amid breathless silence. Not a word of
exultation escaped one of our party, but the nervous strain rather
intensified.</p>
<p>Mr. Y——, the congressman, made the first move. Quietly
alighting from the vehicle, he held a whispered conversation with his
associates, very composedly turned to the commandant, and said:</p>
<p>"No doubt you are aware that there are higher authorities than the post
commander and quartermaster of Fort Buford. This higher court to which I
refer saw fit to award a contract for five million pounds of beef to be
delivered at this post on foot. Any stipulations inserted or omitted in
that article, the customary usages of the War Department would govern. If
you will kindly look at the original contract, a copy of which is in your
possession, you will notice that nothing is said about the quality of the
cattle, just so the pounds avoirdupois are there. The government does not
presume, when contracting for Texas cattle, that they will arrive here in
perfect order; but so long as the sex, age, and weight have been complied
with, there can be no evasion of the contract. My clients are
sub-contractors, under an assignment of the original award, are acting in
good faith in making this tender, and if your decision is against them, we
will make an appeal to the War Department. I am not presuming to tell you
your duty, but trust you will take this matter under full advisement
before making your decision final."</p>
<p>"Mr. Y—, I have received cattle before without any legal advice or
interference of higher authority. Although you have ignored his presence,
there is another man here with a tender of beef who is entitled to more
than passing consideration. He holds a sub-contract under the original
award, and there is no doubt but he is also acting in good faith. My first
concern as a receiving agent of this government is that the goods tendered
must be of the first quality. Your cattle fall below our established
standards here, while his will take rank as the finest lot of beeves ever
tendered at this post, and therefore he is entitled to the award. I am not
going to stand on any technicalities as to who is legally entitled to make
this delivery; there have been charges and counter-charges which have
reached me, the justice of which I cannot pass on, but with the cattle it
is quite different. I lack but five years of being retired on my rank, the
greater portion of which service has been spent on this frontier, and I
feel justified in the decision made. The government buys the best, insists
on its receiving agents demanding the same, and what few remaining years I
serve the flag, there will be no change in my policy."</p>
<p>There was a hurried conference. The "major-domo" was called into the
consultation, after which the congressman returned to the attack.</p>
<p>"Colonel, you are forcing us to make a protest to the War Department. As
commander at Fort Buford, what right have you to consider the tender of
any Tom, Dick, or Harry who may have cattle to sell? Armed with an
assignment of the original award, we have tendered you the pounds quantity
required by the existing contract, have insisted on the acceptance of the
same, and if refused, our protest will be in the War Office before that
sun sets. Now, my advice is—"</p>
<p>"I don't give a damn for you nor your advice. My reputation as a soldier
is all I possess, and no man can dictate to nor intimidate me. My past
record is an open book and one which I am proud of; and while I have the
honor to command at Fort Buford, no threats can terrify nor cause me to
deviate from my duty. Captain O'Neill, attend orders and escort these
vehicles back to their quarters."</p>
<p>The escort loosened out, the conveyances started, and the inspection was
over. We were a quiet crowd, though inwardly we all felt like shouting. We
held apart from the military party, and when near the herd which held the
"Circle Dot" steers, my brother and a number of the boys galloped on ahead
and cut out the animals before our arrival. On entering the wagon-road
near the post, the military cavalcade halted a moment for us to come up.
Lovell was in the lead, and as we halted the commandant said to him: "We
have decided to receive your cattle in the morning—about ten o'clock
if that hour will be convenient. I may not come over, but the
quartermaster's Mr. Sanders will count for us, and you cowmen ought to
agree on the numbers. We have delayed you a day, and if you will put in a
bill for demurrage, I will approve it. I believe that is all. We'll expect
you to spend the night with us at the post. I thought it best to advise
you now, so that you might give your men any final orders."</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2HCH0023" id="link2HCH0023"></SPAN></p>
<br/>
<h2> CHAPTER XXIII. KANGAROOED </h2>
<p>Lovell and his attorneys joined the cavalcade which returned to the post,
while we continued on south, fording the Missouri above Forrest's camp.
The two recovered beeves were recognized by their ranch brands as
belonging in Bee County, thus identifying them as having escaped from Bob
Quirk's herd, though he had previously denied all knowledge of them. The
cattle world was a small one, and it mattered little where an animal
roamed, there was always a man near by who could identify the brand and
give the bovine's past history. With the prospects bright for a new owner
on the morrow, these two wayfarers found lodgment among our own for the
night.</p>
<p>But when another day dawned, it brought new complications. Instead of the
early arrival of any receiving party, the appointed hour passed, noon
came, and no one appeared. I had ridden down to the lower camps about the
latter hour, yet there was no one who could explain, neither had any word
from the post reached Forrest's wagon. Sponsilier suggested that we ride
into Buford, and accordingly all three of us foremen started. When we
sighted the ford on the Missouri, a trio of horsemen were just emerging
from the water, and we soon were in possession of the facts. Sanders, my
brother, and Mike Sutton composed the party, and the latter explained the
situation. Orders from the War Department had reached Fort Buford that
morning, temporarily suspending the post commander and his quartermaster
from receiving any cattle intended for that post, and giving notice that a
special commissioner was then en route from Minneapolis with full
authority in the premises. The order was signed by the first quartermaster
and approved by the head of that department; there was no going behind it,
which further showed the strength that the opposition were able to
command. The little attorney was wearing his war-paint, and we all
dismounted, when Sanders volunteered some valuable points on the wintering
of Texas cattle in the North. Sutton made a memorandum of the data, saying
if opportunity offered he would like to submit it in evidence at the final
hearing. The general opinion was that a court of inquiry would be
instituted, and if such was the case, our cause was not by any means
hopeless.</p>
<p>"The chances are that the opposition will centre the fight on an
assignment of the original contract which they claim to hold," said the
lawyer, in conclusion. "The point was advanced yesterday that we were
intruders, while, on the other hand, the government was in honor bound to
recognize its outstanding obligation, no matter in whose hands it was
presented, so long as it was accompanied by the proper tender. A great
deal will depend on the viewpoint of this special commissioner; he may be
a stickler for red tape, with no concern for the service, as were the post
commander and quartermaster. Their possession of the original document
will be self-evident, and it will devolve on us to show that that
assignment was illegal. This may not be as easy as it seems, for the
chances are that there may be a dozen men in the gang, with numerous
stool-pigeons ready and willing to do their bidding. This contract may
demonstrate the possibility of a ring within a ring, with everything
working to the same end. The absence of Honest John Griscom at this
delivery is significant as proving that his presence at Dodge and Ogalalla
was a mistake. You notice, with the exception of Field and Radcliff, they
are all new men. Well, another day will tell the story."</p>
<p>The special commissioner could not arrive before the next morning. An
ambulance, with relay teams, had left the post at daybreak for Glendive,
and would return that night. Since the following promised to be a decisive
day, we were requested to bring every available man and report at Fort
Buford at an early hour. The trio returned to the post and we foremen to
our herds. My outfit received the news in anything but a cheerful mood.
The monotony of the long drive had made the men restless, and the delay of
a single day in being finally relieved, when looked forward to, was doubly
exasperating. It had been over six months since we left the ranch in
Medina, and there was a lurking suspicion among a number of the boys that
the final decision would be against our cattle and that they would be
thrown back on our hands. There was a general anxiety among us to go home,
hastened by the recent frosty nights and a common fear of a Northern
climate. I tried to stem this feeling, promising a holiday on the morrow
and assuring every one that we still had a fighting chance.</p>
<p>We reached the post at a timely hour the next morning. Only three men were
left with each herd, my wrangler and cook accompanying us for the day.
Parent held forth with quite a dissertation on the legal aspects of the
case, and after we forded the river, an argument arose between him and
Jake Blair. "Don't talk to me about what's legal and what isn't," said the
latter; "the man with the pull generally gets all that he goes after. You
remember the Indian and the white man were at a loss to know how to divide
the turkey and the buzzard, but in the end poor man got the buzzard. And
if you'll just pay a little more attention to humanity, you may notice
that the legal aspects don't cut so much figure as you thought they did.
The moment that cattle declined five to seven dollars a head, The Western
Supply Company didn't trouble themselves as to the legality or the right
or wrong, but proceeded to take advantage of the situation at once. Neal,
when you've lived about twenty-five years on the cold charity of
strangers, you'll get over that blind confidence and become wary and
cunning. It might be a good idea to keep your eye open to-day for your
first lesson. Anyhow don't rely too strong on the right or justice of
anything, but keep a good horse on picket and your powder dry."</p>
<p>The commissioner had arrived early that morning and would take up matters
at once. Nine o'clock was set for the hearing, which would take place in
the quartermaster's office. Consultations were being held among the two
factions, and the only ray of light was the reported frigidity of the
special officer. He was such a superior personage that ordinary mortals
felt a chill radiating from his person on their slightest approach. His
credentials were from the War Department and were such as to leave no
doubt but that he was the autocrat of the situation, before whom all
should render homage. A rigid military air prevailed about the post and
grounds, quite out of the ordinary, while the officers' bar was empty and
silent.</p>
<p>The quartermaster's office would comfortably accommodate about one hundred
persons. Fort Buford had been rebuilt in 1871, the adobe buildings giving
place to frame structures, and the room in which the hearing was to be
held was not only commodious but furnished with good taste. Promptly on
the stroke of the hour, and escorted by the post adjutant, the grand mogul
made his appearance. There was nothing striking about him, except his
military bearing; he was rather young and walked so erect that he actually
leaned backward a trifle. There was no prelude; he ordered certain tables
rearranged, seated himself at one, and called for a copy of the original
contract. The post adjutant had all the papers covering the situation in
hand, and the copy was placed at the disposal of the special commissioner,
who merely glanced at the names of the contracting parties, amount and
date, and handed the document back. Turning to the table at which Lovell
and his attorneys sat, he asked for the credentials under which they were
tendering beeves at Fort Buford. The sub-contract was produced, some
slight memorandum was made, and it was passed back as readily as was the
original. The opposition were calmly awaiting a similar request, and when
it came, in offering the papers, Congressman Y—— took occasion
to remark: "Our tender is not only on a sub-contract, but that agreement
is fortified by an assignment of the original award, by and between the
War Department and The Western Supply Company. We rely on the latter; you
will find everything regular."</p>
<p>The customary glance was given the bulky documents. Senator Aspgrain was
awaiting the opportune moment to attack the assignment. When it came, the
senator arose with dignity and, addressing the commissioner, attempted to
enter a protest, but was instantly stopped by that high functionary. A
frozen silence pervaded the room. "There is no occasion for any remarks in
this matter," austerely replied the government specialist. "Our department
regularly awarded the beef contract for this post to The Western Supply
Company. There was ample competition on the award, insuring the government
against exorbitant prices, and the required bonds were furnished for the
fulfillment of the contract. Right then and there all interest upon the
part of the grantor ceased until the tender was made at this post on the
appointed day of delivery. In the interim, however, it seems that for
reasons purely their own, the grantees saw fit to sub-let their contract,
not once but twice. Our department amply protected themselves by requiring
bonds, and the sub-contractors should have done the same. That, however,
is not the matter at issue, but who is entitled to deliver on the original
award. Fortunately that point is beyond question; an assignment of the
original has always been recognized at the War Office, and in this case
the holders of the same are declared entitled to deliver. There is only
one provision,—does the article of beef tendered qualify under the
specifications? That is the only question before making this decision
final. If there is any evidence to the contrary, I am ready to hear it."</p>
<p>This afforded the opportunity of using Sanders as a witness, and Sutton
grasped the opportunity of calling him to testify in regard to wintering
Southern cattle in the North. After stating his qualifications as a
citizen and present occupation, he was asked by the commissioner regarding
his experience with cattle to entitle his testimony to consideration. "I
was born to the occupation in Texas," replied the witness. "Five years ago
this summer I came with beef cattle from Uvalde County, that State, to
this post, and after the delivery, accepted a situation under the
quartermaster here in locating and holding the government's beeves. At
present I am foreman and have charge of all cattle delivered at or issued
from this post. I have had five years' experience in wintering Texas
cattle in this vicinity, and have no hesitancy in saying that it is a
matter of the utmost importance that steers should be in the best possible
flesh to withstand our winters. The losses during the most favorable
seasons have averaged from one to five per cent., while the same cattle in
a severe season will lose from ten to twenty-five, all depending on the
condition of the stock with the beginning of cold weather. Since my
connection with this post we have always received good steers, and our
losses have been light, but above and below this military reservation the
per cent. loss has run as high as fifty among thin, weak animals."</p>
<p>"Now, Mr. Sanders," said the special commissioner, "as an expert, you are
testifying as to the probable loss to the government in this locality in
buying and holding beef on its own account. You may now state if you have
seen the tender of beef made by Field, Radcliff & Co., and if so,
anticipating the worst, what would be the probable loss if their cattle
were accepted on this year's delivery?"</p>
<p>"I was present at their inspection by the officers of this post," replied
the witness, "and have no hesitancy in saying that should the coming one
prove as hard a winter as '82 was, there would be a loss of fully one half
these cattle. At least that was my opinion as expressed to the post
commander and quartermaster at the inspection, and they agreed with me.
There are half a dozen other boys here whose views on wintering cattle can
be had—and they're worth listening to."</p>
<p>This testimony was the brutal truth, and though eternal, was sadly out of
place. The opposition lawyers winced; and when Sutton asked if permission
would be given to hear the testimony of the post commander and
quartermaster, both familiar with the quality of cattle the government had
been receiving for years, the commissioner, having admitted damaging
testimony, objected on the ground that they were under suspension, and
military men were not considered specialists outside their own vocation.
Other competent witnesses were offered and objected to, simply because
they would not admit they were experts. Taking advantage of the opening,
Congressman Y—— called attention to a few facts in passing.
This unfortunate situation, he said, in substance, was deeply regretted by
his clients and himself. The War Department was to be warmly commended for
sending a special commissioner to hear the matter at issue, otherwise
unjust charges might have been preferred against old and honored officers
in the service. However, if specialists were to be called to testify, and
their testimony considered, as to what per cent. of cattle would survive a
winter, why not call on the weather prophets to testify just what the
coming one would be? He ridiculed the attestations of Sanders as
irrelevant, defiantly asserting that the only question at issue was, were
there five million pounds of dressed beef in the tender of cattle by
Field, Radcliff & Co. He insisted on the letter in the bond being
observed. The government bought cattle one year with another, and assumed
risks as did other people. Was there any man present to challenge his
assertion that the pounds quantity had been tendered?</p>
<p>There was. Don Lovell arose, and addressing the special commissioner,
said: "Sir, I am not giving my opinion as an expert but as a practical
cowman. If the testimony of one who has delivered over ninety thousand
cattle to this government, in its army and Indian departments, is of any
service to you, I trust you will hear me patiently. No exception is taken
to your ruling as to who is entitled to deliver on the existing award;
that was expected from the first. I have been contracting beef to this
government for the past fifteen years, and there may be tricks in the
trade of which I am ignorant. The army has always demanded the best, while
lower grades have always been acceptable to the Indian Department. But in
all my experience, I have never tendered this government for its
gut-eating wards as poor a lot of cattle as I am satisfied that you are
going to receive at the hands of Field, Radcliff & Co. I accept the
challenge that there are not five million pounds of dressed beef in their
tender to-day, and what there is would be a disgrace to any commonwealth
to feed its convicts. True, these cattle are not intended for immediate
use, and I make the counter-assertion that this government will never kill
out fifty per cent. of the weight that you accept to-day. Possibly you
prefer the blandishments of a lobbyist to the opinion of a practical
cowman like Sanders. That's your privilege. You refuse to allow us to show
the relationship between The Western Supply Company and the present
holders of its assignment, and in doing so I charge you with being in
collusion with these contractors to defraud the government!"</p>
<p>"You're a liar!" shouted Congressman Y——, jumping to his feet.
The only reply was a chair hurled from the hand of Sutton at the head of
the offender, instantly followed by a rough house. Several officers
present sprang to the side of the special commissioner, but fortunately
refrained from drawing revolvers. I was standing at some distance from the
table, and as I made a lunge forward, old man Don was hurled backward into
my arms. He could not whip a sick chicken, yet his uncontrollable anger
had carried him into the general melee and he had been roughly thrown out
by some of his own men. They didn't want him in the fight; they could do
all that was necessary. A number of soldiers were present, and while the
officers were frantically commanding them to restore order, the scrap went
merrily on. Old man Don struggled with might and main, cursing me for
refusing to free him, and when one of the contractors was knocked down
within easy reach, I was half tempted to turn him loose. The "major-domo"
had singled out Sponsilier and was trying issues with him, Bob Quirk was
dropping them right and left, when the deposed commandant sprang upon a
table, and in a voice like the hiss of an adder, commanded peace, and the
disorder instantly ceased.</p>
<p>The row had lasted only a few seconds. The opposing sides stood glaring
daggers at each other, when the commissioner took occasion to administer a
reproof to all parties concerned, referring to Texas in not very
complimentary terms. Dave Sponsilier was the only one who had the temerity
to offer any reply, saying, "Mr. Yank, I'll give you one hundred dollars
if you'll point me out the grave of a man, woman, or child who starved to
death in that state."</p>
<p>A short recess was taken, after which apologies followed, and the
commissioner resumed the hearing. A Western lawyer, named Lemeraux, made a
very plausible plea for the immediate acceptance of the tender of Field,
Radcliff & Co. He admitted that the cattle, at present, were not in as
good flesh as his clients expected to offer them; that they had left the
Platte River in fine condition, but had been twice quarantined en route.
He was cautious in his remarks, but clearly intimated that had there been
no other cattle in competition for delivery on this award, there might
have been no quarantine. In his insinuations, the fact was adroitly
brought out that the isolation of their herds, if not directly chargeable
to Lovell and his men, had been aided and abetted by them, retarding the
progress of his clients' beeves and forcing them to travel as fast as
twenty-five miles a day, so that they arrived in a jaded condition. Had
there been no interference, the tender of Field, Radcliff & Co. would
have reached this post ten days earlier, and rest would soon have restored
the cattle to their normal condition. In concluding, he boldly made the
assertion that the condition of his client's tender of beef was the result
of a conspiracy to injure one firm, that another drover might profit
thereby; that right and justice could be conserved only by immediately
making the decision final, and thus fearlessly silencing any and all
imputations reflecting on the character of this government's trusted
representatives.</p>
<p>The special commissioner assumed an air of affected dignity and announced
that a conclusion had been arrived at. Turning to old man Don, he
expressed the deepest regret that a civilian was beyond his power to
punish, otherwise he would have cause to remember the affront offered
himself; not that he personally cared, but the department of government
which he had the honor to serve was jealous of its good name. Under the
circumstances he could only warn him to be more guarded hereafter in
choosing his language, and assured Lovell that it was in his power to
escort any offender off that military reservation. Pausing a moment, he
resumed a judicial air, and summed up the situation:</p>
<p>"There was no occasion," said he, in an amiable mood, "to refer this
incident to the War Department if the authorities here had gone about
their work properly. Fortunately I was in Minneapolis adjusting some flour
accounts, when I was ordered here by the quartermaster-general. Instead of
attempting to decide who had the best tender of cattle, the one with the
legal right alone should have been considered. Our department is perfectly
familiar with these petty jealousies, which usually accompany awards of
this class, and generally emanate from disappointed and disgruntled
competitors. The point is well taken by counsel that the government does
not anticipate the unforeseen, and it matters not what the loss may be
from the rigors of winter, the contractor is exempt after the day of
delivery. If the cattle were delayed en route, as has been asserted, and
it was necessary to make forced drives in order to reach here within the
specified time, all this should be taken into consideration in arriving at
a final conclusion. On his reinstatement, I shall give the quartermaster
of this post instructions, in receiving these cattle, to be governed, not
so much by their present condition as by what they would have been had
there been no interference. Now in behalf of the War Department, I declare
the award to The Western Supply Company, and assigned to Field, Radcliff,
and associates, to have been fulfilled to the satisfaction of all parties
concerned. This closes the incident, and if there is nothing further, the
inquiry will stand adjourned without date."</p>
<p>"One moment, if you please," said Don Lovell, addressing the commissioner
and contractors; "there is a private matter existing between Field,
Radcliff & Co. and myself which demands an understanding between us. I
hold a sum of money, belonging to them, as indemnity against loss in
driving ten thousand cattle from Southern Texas to this post. That I will
sustain a heavy loss, under your decision, is beyond question. I am
indemnified to the amount of about six dollars and a half a head, and
since the government is exempt from garnishment and the contractors are
wholly irresponsible, I must content myself with the money in hand. To
recover this amount, held as indemnity, suit has been threatened against
me. Of course I can't force their hands, but I sincerely hope they will
feel exultant enough over your kangaroo decision to file their action
before taking their usual outing in Europe. They will have no trouble in
securing my legal address, my rating can be obtained from any commercial
agency, and no doubt their attorneys are aware of the statute of
limitation in my state. I believe that's all, except to extend my thanks
to every one about Fort Buford for the many kind attentions shown my
counsel, my boys, and myself. To my enemies, I can only say that I hope to
meet them on Texas soil, and will promise them a fairer hearing than was
accorded me here to-day. Mr. Commissioner, I have always prided myself on
being a good citizen, have borne arms in defense of my country, and in
taking exception to your decision I brand you as the most despicable
member of The Western Supply Company. Any man who will prostitute a trust
for a money consideration—"</p>
<p>"That's enough!" shouted the special commissioner, rising. "Orderly, call
the officer of the day, and tell him I want two companies of cavalry to
furnish an escort for this man and his herds beyond the boundaries of this
military reservation." Looking Lovell in the face, he said: "You have
justly merited a severe punishment, and I shall report your reflections to
the War and Indian departments, and you may find it more difficult to
secure contracts in the future. One of you officers detail men and take
charge of this man until the escort is ready. The inquiry is adjourned."</p>
<p><SPAN name="link2HCH0024" id="link2HCH0024"></SPAN></p>
<br/>
<h2> CHAPTER XXIV. THE WINTER OF OUR DISCONTENT </h2>
<p>The inquiry was over before noon. A lieutenant detailed a few men and made
a pretense of taking possession of Lovell. But once the special
commissioner was out of sight, the farce was turned into an ovation, and
nearly every officer in the post came forward and extended his sympathy.
Old man Don was visibly affected by the generous manifestations of the
military men in general, and after thanking each one personally, urged
that no unnecessary demonstration should be made, begging that the order
of escort beyond the boundary of the reservation be countermanded. No one
present cared to suggest it, but gave assurance that it would be so
modified as not in any way to interfere with the natural movement of the
herds. Some little time would be required to outfit the forage-wagons to
accommodate the cavalry companies, during which my brother rode up,
leading Lovell's horse, permission was given to leave in advance of the
escort, and we all mounted and quietly rode away.</p>
<p>The sudden turn of affairs had disconcerted every man in the three
outfits. Just what the next move would be was conjecture with most of us,
though every lad present was anxious to know. But when we were beyond the
immediate grounds, Lovell turned in his saddle and asked which one of us
foremen wanted to winter in the North. No one volunteered, and old man Don
continued: "Anticipating the worst, I had a long talk this morning with
Sanders, and he assured me that our cattle would go through any winter
without serious loss. He suggested the Little Missouri as a good range,
and told me of a hay ranch below the mouth of the Beaver. If it can be
bought reasonably, we would have forage for our horses, and the railroad
is said to be not over forty miles to the south. If the government can
afford to take the risk of wintering cattle in this climate, since there
is no other choice, I reckon I'll have to follow suit. Bob and I will take
fresh horses and ride through to the Beaver this afternoon, and you
fellows follow up leisurely with the cattle. Sanders says the winters are
dry and cold, with very little if any snowfall. Well, we're simply up
against it; there's no hope of selling this late in the season, and
nothing is left us but to face the music of a Northern winter."</p>
<p>As we turned in to ford the Missouri, some one called attention to a
cavalry company riding out from their quarters at the post. We halted a
moment, and as the first one entered the road, the second one swung into
view, followed by forage-wagons. From maps in our possession we knew the
southern boundary of the Fort Buford military reservation must be under
twenty miles to the south, and if necessary, we could put it behind us
that afternoon. But after crossing the river, and when the two troops
again came in view, they had dropped into a walk, passing entirely out of
sight long before we reached Forrest's camp. Orders were left with the
latter to take the lead and make a short drive that evening, at least far
enough to convince observers that we were moving. The different outfits
dropped out as their wagons were reached, and when my remuda was sighted,
old man Don ordered it brought in for a change of horses. One of the
dayherders was at camp getting dinner, and inviting themselves to join
him, my employer and my brother helped themselves while their saddles were
shifted to two of my well-rested mounts. Inquiry had been made of all
three of the outfits if any ranch had been sighted on the Beaver while
crossing that creek, but the only recollection among the forty-odd men was
that of Burl Van Vedder, who contended that a dim trail, over which horses
had passed that summer, ran down on the south side of the stream.</p>
<p>With this meagre information Lovell and my brother started. A late dinner
over and the herders relieved, we all rode for the nearest eminence which
would afford us a view. The cavalry were just going into camp below
O'Brien's ranch, their forage-train in sight, while Forrest's cattle were
well bunched and heading south. Sponsilier was evidently going to start,
as his team was tied up and the saddle stock in hand, while the herd was
crossing over to the eastern side of the Yellowstone. We dismounted and
lay around for an hour or so, when the greater portion of the boys left to
help in the watering of our herd, the remainder of us doing outpost duty.
Forrest had passed out of sight, Sponsilier's wagon and remuda crossed
opposite us, going up the valley, followed by his cattle in loose grazing
order, and still we loitered on the hill. But towards evening I rode down
to where the cavalry was encamped, and before I had conversed very long
with the officers, it was clear to me that the shorter our moves the
longer it would extend their outing. Before I left the soldier camp,
Sanders arrived, and as we started away together, I sent him back to tell
the officers to let me know any time they could use half a beef. On
reaching our wagon, the boys were just corralling the saddle stock for
their night-horses, when Sanders begged me to sell him two which had
caught his fancy. I dared not offer them; but remembering the fellow's
faithful service in our behalf, and that my employer expected to remember
him, I ordered him to pick, with Don Lovell's compliments, any horse in
the remuda as a present.</p>
<p>The proposition stunned Sanders, but I insisted that if old man Don was
there, he would make him take something. He picked a good horse out of my
mount and stayed until morning, when he was compelled to return, as the
probabilities were that they would receive the other cattle some time
during the day. After breakfast, and as he was starting to return, he
said, "Well, boys, tell the old man that I don't expect ever to be able to
return his kindness, though I'd ride a thousand miles for the chance. One
thing sure, there isn't a man in Dakota who has money enough to tempt me
to part with my pelon. If you locate down on the Little Missouri, drop me
a line where you are at, and if Lovell wants four good men, I can let him
have them about the first of December. You through lads are liable to be
scared over the coming winter, and a few acclimated ones will put backbone
in his outfit. And tell the old man that if I can ever do him a good turn
just to snap his fingers and I'll quit the government—he's a few
shades whiter than it, anyhow."</p>
<p>The herd had already left the bed-ground, headed south. About five miles
above O'Brien's, we recrossed to the eastern side of the Yellowstone, and
for the next three days moved short distances, the military always camped
well in our rear. The fourth morning I killed a beef, a forage-wagon came
forward and took half of it back to the cavalry camp with our greetings
and farewell, and we parted company. Don Lovell met us about noon, elated
as a boy over his purchase of the hay ranch. My brother had gone on to the
railroad and thence by train to Miles City to meet his remuda and outfit.
"Boys, I have bought you a new home," was the greeting of old man Don, as
he dismounted at our noon camp. "There's a comfortable dugout, stabling
for about ten horses, and seventy-five tons of good hay in the stack. The
owner was homesick to get back to God's country, and he'll give us
possession in ten days. Bob will be in Little Missouri to-day and order us
a car of sacked corn from Omaha, and within a month we'll be as snug as
they are down in old Medina. Bob's outfit will go home from Miles, and if
he can't sell his remuda he'll bring it up here. Two of these outfits can
start back in a few days, and afterward the camp will be reduced to ten
men."</p>
<p>Two days later Forrest veered off and turned his cattle loose below the
junction of the Beaver with the Little Missouri. Sponsilier crossed the
former, scattering his beeves both up and down the latter, while I cut
mine into a dozen bunches and likewise freed them along the creek. The
range was about ten miles in length along the river, and a camp was
established at either end where men would be stationed until the beeves
were located. The commissaries had run low, there was a quiet rivalry as
to which outfits should go home, and we all waited with bated breath for
the final word. I had Dorg Seay secretly inform my employer that I had
given Sanders a horse without his permission, hoping that it might
displease him. But the others pointed out the fact that my outfit had far
the best remuda, and that it would require well-mounted men to locate and
hold that number of cattle through the winter. Old man Don listened to
them all, and the next morning, as all three of us foremen were outlining
certain improvements about the hay ranch with him, he turned to me and
said:</p>
<p>"Tom, I hear you gave Sanders a horse. Well, that was all right, although
it strikes me you were rather liberal in giving him the pick of a choice
remuda. But it may all come right in the long run, as Bob and I have
decided to leave you and your outfit to hold these cattle this winter. So
divide your men and send half of them down to Quince's camp, and have your
cook and wrangler come over to Dave's wagon to bring back provision and
the horses, as we'll start for the railroad in the morning. I may not come
back, but Bob will, and he'll see that you are well fixed for the winter
before he goes home. After he leaves, I want you to write me every chance
you have to send a letter to the railroad. Now, I don't want any grumbling
out of you or your men; you're a disgrace to the state that raised you if
you can't handle cattle anywhere that any other man can."</p>
<p>I felt all along it would fall to me, the youngest of six foremen; and my
own dear brother consigning me to a winter in the North, while he would
bask in the sunshine of our own sunny South! It was hard to face; but I
remembered that the fall before it had been my lot to drive a thousand
saddle horses home to the ranch, and that I had swaggered as a trail
foreman afterward as the result. It had always been my luck to have to
earn every little advance or promotion, while others seemed to fall into
them without any effort. Bob Quirk never saw the day that he was half the
all-round cowman that I was; yet he was above me and could advise, and I
had to obey.</p>
<p>On the morning of the 25th of September, 1884, the two outfits started for
the railroad, leaving the remainder of us in a country, save for the
cattle, so desolate that there was no chance even to spend our wages. I
committed to memory a curtain lecture for my brother, though somehow or
other it escaped me and was never delivered. We rode lines between the
upper and lower wagons, holding the cattle loosely on a large range. A
delightful fall favored us, and before the first squall of winter came on,
the beeves had contented themselves as though they had been born on the
Little Missouri. Meanwhile Bob's wagon and remuda arrived, the car of corn
was hauled to our headquarters, extra stabling was built, and we settled
down like banished exiles. Communication had been opened with Fort Buford,
and in the latter part of October the four promised men arrived, when Bob
Quirk took part of my outfit and went home, leaving me ten men. Parent
remained as cook, the new men assimilated easily, a fiddle was secured,
and in fulfillment of the assertion of Sanders, we picked up courage. Two
grain-fed horses, carefully stabled, were allowed to each man, the
remainder of our large number of saddle stock running free on the range.</p>
<p>To that long winter on the Little Missouri a relentless memory turns in
retrospect. We dressed and lived like Eskimos. The first blizzard struck
us early in December, the thermometer dropped sixty degrees in twelve
hours, but in the absence of wind and snow the cattle did not leave the
breaks along the river. Three weeks later a second one came, and we could
not catch the lead animals until near the railroad; but the storm drove
them up the Little Missouri, and its sheltering banks helped us to check
our worst winter drift. After the first month of wintry weather, the dread
of the cold passed, and men and horses faced the work as though it was
springtime in our own loved southland. The months rolled by scarcely
noticed. During fine weather Sanders and some of his boys twice dropped
down for a few days, but we never left camp except to send letters home.</p>
<p>An early spring favored us. I was able to report less than one per cent.
loss on the home range, with the possibility of but few cattle having
escaped us during the winter. The latter part of May we sold four hundred
saddle horses to some men from the upper Yellowstone. Early in June a
wagon was rigged out, extra men employed, and an outfit sent two hundred
miles up the Little Missouri to attend the round-ups. They were gone a
month and came in with less than five hundred beeves, which represented
our winter drift. Don Lovell reached the ranch during the first week in
July. One day's ride through the splendid cattle, and old man Don lost his
voice, but the smile refused to come off. Everything was coming his way.
Field, Radcliff & Co. had sued him, and the jury awarded him
one-hundred thousand dollars. His bankers had unlimited confidence in his
business ability; he had four Indian herds on the trail and three others
of younger steers, intended for the Little Missouri ranch. Cattle prices
in Texas had depreciated nearly one half since the spring before—"a
good time for every cowman to strain his credit and enlarge his holdings,"
my employer assured me.</p>
<p>Orders were left that I was to begin shipping out the beeves early in
August. It was the intention to ship them in two and three train-load
lots, and I was expecting to run a double outfit, when a landslide came
our way. The first train-load netted sixty dollars a head at Omaha—but
they were beeves; cods like an ox's heart and waddled as they walked. We
had just returned from the railroad with the intention of shipping two
train-loads more, when the quartermaster and Sanders from Fort Buford rode
into the ranch under an escort. The government had lost forty per cent. of
the Field-Radcliff cattle during the winter just passed, and were in the
market to buy the deficiency. The quartermaster wanted a thousand beeves
on the first day of September and October each, and double that number for
the next month. Did we care to sell that amount? A United States marshal,
armed with a search-warrant, could not have found Don Lovell in a month,
but they were promptly assured that our beef steers were for sale. It is
easy to show prime cattle. The quartermaster, Sanders, and myself rode
down the river, crossed over and came up beyond our camp, forded back and
came down the Beaver, and I knew the sale was made. I priced the beeves,
delivered at Buford, at sixty-five dollars a head, and the quartermaster
took them.</p>
<p>Then we went to work in earnest. Sanders remained to receive the first
contingent for Buford, which would leave our range on the 25th of each
month. A single round-up and we had the beeves in hand. The next morning
after Splann left for the mouth of the Yellowstone, I started south for
the railroad with two train-loads of picked cattle. Professional shippers
took them off our hands at the station, accompanied them en route to
market, and the commission house in Omaha knew where to remit the
proceeds. The beef shipping season was on with a vengeance. Our saddle
stock had improved with a winter in the North, until one was equal to two
Southern or trail horses. Old man Don had come on in the mean time, and
was so pleased with my sale to the army post that he returned to Little
Missouri Station at once and bought two herds of three-year-olds at
Ogalalla by wire. This made sixteen thousand steer cattle en route from
the latter point for Lovell's new ranch in Dakota.</p>
<p>"Tom," said old man Don, enthusiastically, "this is the making of a fine
cattle ranch, and we want to get in on the flood-tide. There is always a
natural wealth in a new country, and the goldmines of this one are in its
grass. The instinct that taught the buffalo to choose this as their summer
and winter range was unerring, and they found a grass at hand that would
sustain them in any and all kinds of weather. This country to-day is just
what Texas was thirty years ago. All the early settlers at home grew rich
without any effort, but once the cream of the virgin land is gone, look
out for a change. The early cowmen of Texas flatter themselves on being
shrewd and far-seeing—just about as much as I was last fall, when I
would gladly have lost twenty-five thousand dollars rather than winter
these cattle. Now look where I will come out, all due to the primitive
wealth of the land. From sixty to sixty-five dollars a head beats
thirty-seven and a half for our time and trouble."</p>
<p>The first of the through cattle arrived early in September. They avoided
our range for fear of fever, and dropped in about fifteen miles below our
headquarters on the Little Missouri. Dorg Seay was one of the three
foremen, Forrest and Sponsilier being the other two, having followed the
same route as our herds of the year before. But having spent a winter in
the North, we showed the through outfits a chilling contempt. I had ribbed
up Parent not even to give them a pleasant word about our wagon or
headquarters; and particularly if Bob Quirk came through with one of the
purchased herds, he was to be given the marble heart. One outfit
loose-herded the new cattle, the other two going home, and about the
middle of the month, my brother and The Rebel came trailing in with the
last two herds. I was delighted to meet my old bunkie, and had him remain
over until the last outfit went home, when we reluctantly parted company.
Not so, however, with Bob Quirk, who haughtily informed me that he came
near slapping my cook for his effrontery. "So you are another one of these
lousy through outfits that think we ought to make a fuss over you, are
you?" I retorted. "Just you wait until we do. Every one of you except old
Paul had the idea that we ought to give you a reception and ask you to
sleep in our beds. I'm glad that Parent had the gumption to give you a
mean look; he'll ride for me next year."</p>
<p>The month of October finished the shipping. There was a magic in that
Northern climate that wrought wonders in an animal from the South. Little
wonder that the buffalo could face the blizzard, in a country of his own
choosing, and in a climate where the frost king held high revel five
months out of the twelve. There was a tonic like the iron of wine in the
atmosphere, absorbed alike by man and beast, and its possessor laughed at
the fury of the storm. Our loss of cattle during the first winter,
traceable to season, was insignificant, while we sold out over two hundred
head more than the accounts called for, due to the presence of strays,
which went to Buford. And when the last beef was shipped, the final
delivery concluded to the army, Don Lovell was a quarter-million dollars
to the good, over and above the contract price at which he failed to
deliver the same cattle to the government the fall before.</p>
<p>As foreman of Lovell's beef ranch on the Little Missouri I spent five
banner years of my life. In '89 the stock, good-will, and range were sold
to a cattle syndicate, who installed a superintendent and posted rules for
the observance of its employees. I do not care to say why, but in a
stranger's hands it never seemed quite the same home to a few of us who
were present when it was transformed into a cattle range. Late that fall,
some half-dozen of us who were from Texas asked to be relieved and
returned to the South. A traveler passing through that country to-day will
hear the section about the mouth of the Beaver called only by the
syndicate name, but old-timers will always lovingly refer to it as the Don
Lovell Ranch.</p>
<p><br/><br/><br/><br/></p>
<SPAN name="endofbook"></SPAN>
<div style="break-after:column;"></div><br />